Conservation of Bridges-Graham Tilly
Conservation of Bridges-Graham Tilly
Conservation of Bridges-Graham Tilly
Conservation of Bridges
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Conservation of Bridges
in association with
Alan Frost, Donald Insall Associates
and
Jon Wallsgrove, The Highways Agency
First published 2002 by Spon Press
11 New Fetter Lane, London EC4P 4EE
by Spon Press
29 West 35th Street, New York, NY 10001
Contents
Contributors viii
Foreword ix
Preface x
Chapter 1 Introduction 1
Chapter 2 Legislation 7
Statutory protection for historic bridges 8
World heritage status 9
Scheduled monuments 9
Listed buildings 10
Selection criteria 11
Chapter 5 Ancillaries 39
Notices 39
Chantry chapels and fortifications 44
Toll-houses 46
Visitor centres 47
Pillars 48
vi CONTENTS
Pavilions 52
Access features 53
Chapter 6 Parapets 57
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Background 58
Requirements of parapets 67
Appearance 70
Conservation 71
Strengthening 82
Drawbridge 269
Swingbridges 271
Bascule bridges 276
Vertical lift bridges 283
Transporter bridges 287
Retractable bridges 289
Management practice 290
Contributors
Graham Tilly PhD, BSc (Eng), ACGI, FICE, CEng, Emeritus Director of
Gifford and Partners, Visiting Professor to University of Exeter, has worked
in bridge engineering for 30 years. He has written some 80 technical papers
and chaired numerous national and international committees. He has special
expertise in materials science and carried out considerable research in
this area.
Jon Wallsgrove Dip Arch, RIBA was the Highways Agency’s Architect and
author of ‘The Appearance of Bridges and Other Highways Structures’ as
well as many papers and articles on historic bridges, bridge aesthetics, and,
prior to working for HA, he designed major civic buildings and spent 12
years in building construction. He is now Chief Architect of the Court
Service.
Alan Frost LVO, AA Dipl, RIBA, DCHM, MaPS has been a member of Donald
Insall Associates since 1964, following a Diploma course on the Conservation
of Historical Buildings and is now Deputy Chairman of the company. He
has particular experience in masonry conservation and in long-term
conservation projects at Woburn Abbey and Kedleston Estates, both involv-
ing historic bridge strengthening and restoration, as well as having been
Architect-in-charge of the post-fire restoration of Windsor Castle.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Foreword
Tim Matthews
Chief Executive Highways Agency
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Preface
This book has been written by Gifford and Partners, Consulting Engineers, in
association with Donald Insall, Architects, under a contract to the Highways
Agency, London. The terms of the contract were to research and present
the best methods of conservation of historic bridges with a view to provid-
ing much needed information and advice in an area of growing importance.
Information has been collected from a variety of sources including: pub-
lished case histories, and archives, discussions with practicing engineers
and specialist contractors, and the personal experiences of the authors
obtained over many years.
The text has been seen and discussed by numerous organisations
having interests and responsibilities in historic structures. These include
English Heritage, British Waterways Board, The Institution of Civil Engin-
eers’ Board of Historic Engineering Works, The Society for the Protection
of Ancient Buildings, staff of The Highways Agency, Keith Withey, formerly
of Cornwall County Council and John Fisher, formerly Chief Bridge Engineer
of Shropshire County Council. More specific advice received from individ-
uals and firms is acknowledged in the relevant chapters. The quality and
clarity of the text has greatly benefited from the comments received from
these organisations and people. It should be added that in the view of the
Society for the Protection of Ancient Buildings this book will be particularly
important to County Engineers as they are responsible for the majority of
historic bridges in Britain.
The principal author and editor was Dr Graham Tilly. Chapter 9 on
Iron and Steel was by Rod Pirie, and Chapter 14 on Archaeology by Gerry
Wait, major contributions to chapters 8 and 11 were made by John Simkins
and Jonathan Bayliss, all of Gifford and Partners. The Chapter on Architec-
ture was by Alan Frost of Donald Insall Associates.
Many of the photographic illustrations were provided by Dr Graham
Tilly, some from his collection but most were specially taken for the work.
PREFACE xi
Others were taken by Ian Richards also of Gifford and Partners. Photographs
from other sources are acknowledged in the text.
The Gifford Project Manager was Tim Holmes supported by Jeanette
Hunter, Edmund Hollinghurst, Joint Managing Director of Gifford and Part-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS
Figure 3.1 is courtesy of the Tate Picture Gallery. Figs 6.23, 6.24, 6.25 and
6.26 are courtesy Messrs Metalock. Mr Crack (Cambridgeshire County
Council) kindly provided information about the Magdalene Bridge, Cam-
bridge. Figs 8.3, 8.10, 8.11, 8.13, 8.15, 8.17, and 8.19 appear courtesy of The
Morton Partnership Ltd. Fig. 8.10 is courtesy of the National Trust. Fig. 8.18
is courtesy of New Civil Engineer. Advice provided by the following is grate-
fully acknowledged: Joe Aley, Cambridgeshire County Council; Edward Mor-
ton, The Morton Partnership Ltd, Bethnal Green, London; Mark Sharratt,
Assistant Buildings Manager, The National Trust; John Knight, Regional
Architect, Historic Scotland. Figures 9.2, 9.8 and 9.30 appear courtesy of The
Institution of Civil Engineers. Figures 9.12, 9.16, 9.17, 9.18, 9.19 and 9.33
appear courtesy of Dorothea Restorations Ltd. Figures 9.13, 9.14, 9.18 and
9.36 appear courtesy of Metalock Industrial Services Ltd. Figures 9.26, 9.27
and 9.28 appear courtesy Topbond Group. Chapter 10 – Comments by Pro-
fessor Roland Paxton are gratefully acknowledged. Figs 12.7 and 12.12 are
courtesy Messrs Balvac. Helpful comments by Keith Withey (Cornwall
County Council) and Michael Chrimes (Institution of Civil Engineers) are
gratefully acknowledged. John Collard (West Sussex County Council) kindly
provided information about the Shoreham Harbour Footbridge.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Chapter 1
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Introduction
GLOSSARY
Conservation Work on a bridge which retains its aesthetic merit,
but can incorporate changes that are in keeping.
Changes can include strengthening, widening and
change of use. Conservation can include
restoration, preservation and maintenance.
Heritage authority Generic term for the authority responsible for
advising Government on heritage matters. In
England the responsibility lies with English
Heritage (see Chapter 2). Most countries have
similar arrangements.
Heritage structure A structure (bridge) that has been formally listed
by the heritage authority and subject to planning
requirements.
Historic structure A structure (bridge) recognised as having historic
merit, comprising social, cultural and rarity values,
whether listed or not.
Maintenance Work of a routine nature to prevent or control
processes of deterioration. Maintenance includes
activities such as inspection and monitoring.
Preservation Work to preserve a bridge exactly as it is without
improvement or repair. This can involve removal
to a museum or permanent exhibition place.
Refurbishment Work that goes beyond routine maintenance and
can include both conservation and rehabilitation.
Rehabilitation Work on a structure having little intrinsic merit
but required to be retained in service.
Rehabilitation can involve significant changes in
appearance.
Restoration Work to return a damaged or mutilated bridge
back to its original form.
2 INTRODUCTION
This book has been written primarily for bridge owners and practising engin-
eers, but will also be of value to architects, heritage authorities, archaeol-
ogists, specialist contractors and members of the international bridge com-
munity. Its aim is to provide information to aid the management and
conservation of old bridges within the modern transport network, to
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
improve the quality of conservation and show that demolition can often be
avoided. The definition of an old bridge has been taken as one constructed
before the motorway era in Britain, that is before about 1960. The advice
is derived from examples of conservation work carried out in the past and
includes both good and bad practice. The examples are taken from Britain
and other countries and deal with relevant problems.
Tasks that have to be addressed in the course of the management of old
bridges include routine maintenance, conservation to the requirements of
heritage authorities, strengthening to carry higher vehicle loads, widening
to meet the higher volumes of traffic and change of use.
Terms such as conservation, rehabilitation, restoration and preservation,
tend to be used rather loosely and to avoid misunderstandings it has been
necessary to draw distinctions and, for the purposes of this book, define
them according to the most generally accepted usage. Summarised versions
of the definitions are given in the Glossary of Terms and more comprehen-
sive versions are given here.
‘Conservation’ is an approach where there is something of fundamental
historic or aesthetic merit to be kept, but there can be change, as long as
new insertions are in keeping with or enhance that which is existing. It is a
living and developing situation. For instance, in a conservation area of a
town there could be new buildings as long as they are in keeping with the
rest of the environment. Saddling the arch of an old stone bridge or strength-
ening an existing parapet would be conservation, as would adding contem-
porary lighting in sympathy with the original design. Re-using an old bridge
for pedestrians where it was inadequate for motor vehicles would be a good
example of conservation. Within an overall conservation exercise on a
bridge there might well be restoration or preservation of certain elements.
‘Restoration’ is where something has been damaged, changed or mutilated
and it is desired to return it to the condition and appearance it formerly
had. This needs to be based on good historical evidence, and should use
the correct materials. Reinstating a lost parapet or replacing crumbling
stonework details would be restoration, as would removing conspicuous
and undesirable exposed service pipes, likewise removing an ugly concrete
widening to a medieval stone bridge and resiting a separate new structure.
‘Preservation’ is where everything is preserved in time exactly as is, with
no regard for the need to use the item. Corroded and damaged elements
would be stabilised and kept as the original material, and not restored. It
is the museum approach and is usually considered to be the most extreme.
It would be used perhaps for the remains of a Roman bridge. In more ordi-
nary bridges, it would be used for certain elements which no longer have
a function, but are of historical interest. Historic signs (e.g. toll charges),
damage sustained during historic battles, ancient flood height marks, orig-
inal tool marking on stones and the ruins of former chapels would all be
items to preserve on an old bridge.
‘Rehabilitation’ is where a structure is of little intrinsic merit, but is worth
INTRODUCTION 3
or altered in form, e.g. a masonry arch converted to a steel deck using the
original masonry abutment. The bridge might even be moved to a different
location, with a different span.
‘Maintenance’ is where routine activities are carried out to prevent or
control processes of deterioration such as corrosion, wear of moving parts,
decay of timber and degradation of stonework. Activities that are required
include removal of rust and painting, cleaning of drains and gullies, lubri-
cation of mechanisms, and repointing of mortar in masonry joints. Mainte-
nance requires inspections at regular intervals and, where necessary, moni-
toring. Maintenance work that goes beyond routine activities, for example
whole scale replacement of machinery in a movable bridge, is referred to
as ‘refurbishment’.
In Britain, it is Government policy to ‘refurbish rather than replace bridges
wherever possible’ (Highways Agency Maintenance Strategic Plan). Refur-
bishment would include both conservation and rehabilitation. There are
aspects that would suggest that a conservation approach should be taken.
These would be age, beauty or character, consistency with its location,
whether it was listed or scheduled, whether it had received any design
awards, whether it was in or near a conservation area or other sensitive
location, or whether it had any literary or historical associations. Rehabili-
tation would be considered for a bridge without any of the above factors
being notably present, but where the keeping of the bridge would have bene-
fits of cost, sustainability or reduced disturbance to users or local people.
The term ‘heritage structure’ is used to refer to bridges that have been
formally listed as having special merit and subject to planning requirements,
as explained in Chapter 2. Examples are mostly taken from bridges in Britain,
but most countries now have broadly similar legislation in place. Bridges
that are not heritage listed, but are nevertheless of historic importance,
are referred to as ‘historic bridges’. They may merit listing but have been
overlooked, or be seen as having only local significance which does not
merit national recognition. The various aspects of assessment of the historic
merit of bridges are discussed in Chapter 3.
It is important to understand the background to conservation and to this
end there are chapters on legislation, attitudes to conservation, architecture
and archaeology.
The different types of bridges are categorised according to material and
structural form, i.e. masonry, timber, iron and steel, suspended, movable
and concrete. These bridge chapters follow a generally similar format, but
vary to suit the individual characteristics of the different types.
쐌 The main sections of the bridge chapters are concerned with the
methods of conservation. Here the definition of conservation is inter-
preted to include activities that might, arguably, be considered to be
maintenance. For example, painting is generally classified as routine
maintenance, but it can also involve some important conservation
issues that require to be considered and dealt with correctly. The infor-
mation contained in the conservation sections provides the engineer
with the pros and cons of the various available techniques, and
examples of their use, to enable the best solution to be adopted for
conservation of the bridge in question.
쐌 Widening is relevant to all types of bridge, but is very common for
bridges originally built for horse-drawn vehicles. There is therefore a
comprehensive section on widening of masonry arch bridges.
쐌 Strengthening is relevant to all types of bridge, including those built in
the 1960s, and is addressed in the respective chapters.
쐌 Summaries of the management activities are given at the ends of the
bridge chapters. These sections deal briefly with inspection, common
types of deterioration, maintenance and related activities. To an extent
this section summarises some of the points made earlier in the chapter.
are tables giving examples of the bridge type, salient details and brief
notes on their performance (NB the term ‘performance’ is used to refer
to the success, or otherwise of the bridge in coping with the processes
of degradation, the effects of long-term weathering, wind, traffic and ped-
estrian loading).
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Legislation
ABBREVIATIONS
UNESCO United Nations Education, Cultural and Scientific
Organisation
ICOMOS International Council on Monuments and Sites
MPP Monument Protection Programme
SMC Scheduled Monument Consent
DCMS Department of Culture Media and Sport
RCHME Royal Commission of Historic Monuments of England
Most countries recognise the value of their historic bridges and have legis-
lation to ensure that they are properly managed. In this chapter, the historic
development and current legislation in Britain is outlined.
Funding of the maintenance and repair of bridges has always been a mat-
ter of concern and dispute. In 1215, Chapter 23 of Magna Carta stated that:
No manor or man shall be compelled to make bridges over the rivers, except
those who ought to do it of old were and rightfully to do so.
that the burden of bridge maintenance should fall on the county. In 1888, the
Local Government Act was a major step forward as it made county councils
responsible for maintaining all main roads in the country. In 1894, the main-
tenance and repair of other roads in rural areas became the responsibility
of rural district councils. There was, however, no administrative machinery
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Monuments and Archaeological Areas Act 1979 and the Town and Country
Planning Act 1971. Some structures may be both scheduled and listed but,
for statutory control, the requirements of scheduling take precedence
over listing.
The Town and Country Planning Act of 1971 makes separate provisions
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
SCHEDULED MONUMENTS
Decisions on scheduling of monuments in England are made by the Sec-
retary of State for the Department of Culture, Media and Sport (DCMS), act-
ing upon advice provided by English Heritage (formerly the Historic Build-
ings and Monuments Commission of England). In Wales, Cadw-Welsh
Heritage provides advice to the Welsh Office, and in Scotland, Historic Scot-
land advises the Scottish Executive. In Northern Ireland, the Environment
and Heritage Service fulfils this advisory role. In 1986, English Heritage
embarked upon the continuing Monuments Protection Programme (MPP), a
systematic and rigorous review of all scheduled monuments. Monuments
had previously been selected on an intuitive basis, but MPP is changing the
process and ensuring that scheduled monuments are more representative
of the nation’s surviving heritage monuments and sites. A practical conse-
quence of MPP is a predicted five-fold increase in the number of sched-
uled monuments.
10 LEGISLATION
LISTED BUILDINGS
The Secretary of State maintains lists of historic structures according to the
Town and Country Planning Act 1971. These lists are intended for the guid-
ance of local planning authorities because, unlike scheduled monuments,
listed buildings remain the responsibility of such authorities. The Act stipu-
lates that works affecting buildings listed as grade I and IIⴱ are referred to
English Heritage for consultation. Buildings are graded I, IIⴱ and II (a grade III
previously existed but is no longer statutory, see below). All works involving
demolition, alteration or extension of listed buildings require a specific grant
of Listed Building Consent. Circular 8/87 (appendix IV, subsection IX) pro-
vides explicit guidance on the suitability of alterations to listed bridges. It
is recognised that there is a difficulty in reconciling the conflicting needs of
conservation and current usage:
In general, bridges, which are still in use, are listed rather than scheduled.
Procedures for consultation with specified local amenity groups apply to all
applications to demolish a listed building. The Secretary of State may also
‘call-in’ applications for certain classes of demolition for determination.
Unlike scheduling, Crown property can be listed and departments must con-
sult the appropriate local authority about proposals to alter, demolish or
extend a listed building. Local authorities who own a listed bridge and wish
to alter, demolish or extend, must make their applications to do so to the
Secretary of State.
A review of the overlap between scheduling and listing of historic bridges
SELECTION CRITERIA 11
has recently been initiated. The initial selection of bridges for scheduling
was made prior to the introduction of listed status, and listing alone may
be a more appropriate status for some bridges. The selection of bridges for
scheduling depends upon assessment of the archaeological potential for
such complex structures, the special treatment afforded by scheduling is
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
SELECTION CRITERIA
The criteria (nonstatutory) for assessing importance for scheduling pur-
poses were published in 1983 and are as follows:
The selection criteria for listing, established in 1970 by the Listing Com-
mittee of the Historic Buildings Council, are based upon date and the value
of specific examples within types (those showing technological innovation
or virtuosity, those with significant historical associations, or buildings with
particular group value). Principles of selection approved by the Secretary
of State include:
쐌 all bridges built before 1700 surviving in anything like original condition;
쐌 most bridges circa 1700–1840, though some selection is exercised;
쐌 bridges built between 1840 and 1914 are selected according to quality
and character, including principal works of principal engineers;
쐌 only selected bridges of high quality built between 1914 and 1939 are
listed; and
쐌 a few of the most outstanding bridges, post-dating 1939, are listed; for
12 LEGISLATION
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Jeffreys, R. (1949) The King’s Highway. London: The Batchworth Press.
Chapter 3
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Attitudes to conservation
ABBREVIATIONS
SPAB Society for the Protection of Ancient Buildings
PHEW Panel for Historic Engineering Works
PPG Planning Policy Guidance
This chapter deals with past and present attitudes to the conservation of
old bridges.
PAST ATTITUDES
Bridges form an important part of the cultural heritage, but unlike old ruins
and museum pieces continue to have a functional purpose and must be
maintained so that they can meet that purpose.
Notable bridges have always enjoyed a degree of special attention and on
occasions when it was necessary to replace them they were demolished
with reluctance and only after considerable debate, for example in the 1930s
there was much controversy about the demolition of Rennie’s Waterloo
Bridge to make way for the present bridge across the Thames in London.
A proposal to demolish Telford’s Conway suspension bridge in 1958 led to
a world outcry, since when it has been closed to traffic and made over to
the care of the National Trust. The importance of Ironbridge in Shropshire
was always recognised and it is now maintained as a monument, closed to
vehicles and only used by pedestrians. On the other hand, Billingham
Branch Bridge, Middlesborough, was not recognised as having any historic
importance and it was decided to demolish it when the railway line became
redundant. In fact, the bridge is one of the first to be welded and is the most
14 ATTITUDES TO CONSERVATION
It is sad to say that in this manner most of the bigger Minsters and a vast
number of more humble buildings, both in England and on the Continent, have
been dealt with by men of talent often, and worthy of better employment but
deaf to the claims of poetry and history in the highest sense of the words.
It is for all these buildings therefore of all times and types that we plead
and call upon those who have to deal with them to put Protection in the place
of Restoration, to stave off decay by daily care to prop a perilous wall or mend
a leaking roof by such means as are obviously meant for support or covering
and show no pretence of other art, and otherwise to resist all tampering with
either the fabric or ornament of the building as it stands if it has become
inconvenient for its present use, to raise another building rather than alter or
enlarge the old one; in fine to treat our ancient buildings as monuments of a
bygone art created by bygone manners, that modern art cannot meddle with-
out destroying. Thus and thus only shall we escape the reproach of our learn-
ing being turned into a snare to us, thus and thus only can we protect our
ancient buildings and hand them down instructive and venerable to those that
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
쐌 ‘It has become less easy to make a convincing financial case to justify
demolition and reconstruction. In the past, financial cases were based
on unfactored costs and it could usually be shown that high first-cost
could be offset against reduced maintenance costs in the future. How-
ever, this made no allowance for the discounting of costs into the future
and when this is done a high first-cost is rarely compensated by lower
costs in the future. This is a controversial issue, but there is no doubt
16 ATTITUDES TO CONSERVATION
GUIDANCE
In Britain, the Department of the Environment, Transport and Regions has,
from time to time, issued guidance on the management of old bridges. In
1925, Circular No. 224 (Roads) addressed to all highway authorities, the
Assistant Secretary to the then Ministry of Transport, drew attention to the
desirability of considering appearance, as well as the structural issues of
ancient bridges. The points made in relation to matters such as archaeolog-
ical interest, local materials and strengthening are as relevant today as they
were in 1925. Circular No. 224 is reproduced on page 19.
It is, however, pertinent to note that in 1925 bridges regarded as being of
historical importance were almost exclusively ancient masonry structures.
Now, at the beginning of the 21st century, many other types of bridge and
more recent constructions, including concrete bridges, are accorded heri-
tage status.
In 1964, a booklet ‘The Appearance of Bridges’ was issued by the then
Ministry of Transport, containing a chapter on Problems of Historical
Bridges. As in Circular No. 224, reference was made to the growth in traffic
and consequent need to strengthen bridges. The different ways of providing
an additional lane on a narrow bridge are addressed:
18 ATTITUDES TO CONSERVATION
쐌 construct a by-pass;
쐌 construct a new footbridge alongside and convert former footway into
a traffic lane;
쐌 construct a new highway bridge alongside; or
쐌 construct a cantilevered addition to the deck.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
ROADS DEPARTMENT
7 Whitehall Gardens
London S.W.1.
14th March 1925
Sir
I am directed by the Minister of Transport to draw the attention of local
authorities to the following observations upon the subject of bridge design:
There are few features, whether of countryside or town, which attract
more notice than the bridges carrying roads over stream and watercourses.
Many of them possess historical and archaeological interest. Some illustrate
the fitting use of local materials by our forefathers, while others provide
pleasing examples of modern methods of construction. Of recent years, the
rapid increase of traffic has impelled highway authorities to undertake the
strengthening of many ancient bridges and the building of many additional
structures, with the aid of substantial contributions from the Road Fund
administered by this Department.
So far as the strength of such structures is concerned, your Council will
be aware that for some years past certain regulations have been prescribed
as a condition of a grant from the Road Fund. But it is possible for a bridge
to comply with these regulations and yet fall short of the legitimate expec-
tations of the public in the matter of architectural design and suitability to
its surroundings.
Colonel Ashley accordingly wishes to impress upon all local authorities,
who are contemplating the alteration of ancient bridges or the erection of
new ones, the great importance of securing at the outset reliable expert
advice upon the design – not merely from the standpoint of the stability of
the structure, but also of its proportions and artistic character. Seeing how
a long life may be anticipated for public monuments of this class, it will
hardly be questioned that every care should be taken to build bridges, and
form their approaches, in a manner which will display the sound judgment
of the days in which we live.
With this end in view, the Minister wishes it to be generally known that
when receiving applications from local authorities for assistance from the
Road Fund, he will require to be satisfied that the foregoing considerations
have been taken into account. There is no reason to assume that the observ-
ance of these principles will add to the cost of construction, for past experi-
ence shows that bridges are more frequently criticised for undue elabor-
ation than for well-proportioned simplicity.
I am, Sir,
Your obedient Servant
H.H. PIGGOT
Assistant Secretary
20 ATTITUDES TO CONSERVATION
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Department of the Environment. (1990) Archaeology and Planning. Policy Planning
Guidance Note 16, HMSO.
Department of the Environment. (1994) Planning and the Historic Environment. Policy
Planning Guidance Note 15, HMSO.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Highways Agency. (1996) The Appearance of Bridges and Other Highway Structures.
HMSO.
Jeffreys, R. (1949) The King’s Highway. London: The Batchworth Press.
Jervoise, E. (1930) The Ancient Bridges of the South of England. London: The Architec-
tural Press (one of a series of books on the regions of England).
Ministry of Transport. (1964) The Appearance of Bridges. HMSO.
Public Works, Roads and Transport Congress. (1933) British Bridges.
Chapter 4
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Evolution of structural
form
A summary of the different structural forms and the dates they were intro-
duced is given in Table 4.1. Summarised information about the introduction
and use of construction materials is given in Table 4.2. A summary of the
main styles of design of masonry arch bridges is given in Table 4.3.
The early trade routes followed the contours of the countryside and the
most favourable geological strata by a process of experience and intuition.
Bridges were only required where it was otherwise unavoidable. In conse-
quence the earliest structures were river crossings where it was not poss-
ible to use a ford; this continued until the industrial revolution starting with
the canal era in the eighteenth century.
Some of the earliest surviving bridges are the primitive river crossings
composed of flat stone slabs laid across raised stones, commonly called
clapper bridges, see Fig. 4.1. Three of the better known structures that have
survived are at Post Bridge, Dartmoor, Tarr Steps, Somerset and Linton,
Wharfedale. They are said to date from the Bronze Age, but this has been
in question as they would almost certainly have had to be reassembled from
time to time and it would be fairer to say that they are ancient sites. Never-
22 EVOLUTION OF STRUCTURAL FORM
Catenary suspension c1800 to present day. The availability of cast iron and
wrought iron, and the development of wire cables and
chains, enabled suspension bridges to be developed
beyond the early primitive forms. Notable examples include
Union Bridge 1820, Chelsea Bridge 1937 and Severn Bridge
1966.
Lattice girder c1860 to 1940. Early examples include the ill-fated first Tay
Rail Bridge which collapsed in a storm in 1879. There are
several from that era still in use. Steel trellis girder
footbridges were constructed up to 1940. Examples include
Kew Rail Bridge, London 1868 and Gaol Ferry Footbridge,
Bristol, 1935.
Early composite c1900 to 1940. The various forms of early composite decks
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Late composite c1940 to present day. Decks having steel beams and in situ
concrete slabs were introduced in the mid 1930s. Precast
prestressed concrete beams were introduced in the 1940s
and have become a dominant form of construction for
spans of up to 27 m.
Masonry clapper Bronze Age to eighteenth century, there are some well-
known surviving examples such as Tarr Steps, Somerset
and numerous lesser known structures.
Steel (bolted, riveted) The first significant steel bridge, Forth Rail Bridge, was
built in 1890. Riveted construction continued to be used
until 1960.
Mass concrete Comparatively few were built between the end of the
nineteenth century and the 1930s. The oldest survivor,
Axmouth Bridge, Devon, 1877, has been refurbished and
is now limited to pedestrian use.
1750–1850 Spandrels sometimes pierced to relieve the load and help storm
water flow, both on larger semicircular arches and flatter arches.
1760–1830 Canal era, large number of single-span bridges elliptical arches built
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
survived, the superstructures most probably having been timber which fell
into decay after the Romans’ departure. There are however a number of
surviving subterranean arch structures built by the Romans, one of the most
notable being the Monument House Culvert in the City of London, shown
in Fig. 4.4, estimated to have had a total length of around 80 m. An excavated
length of 20 m was found to be constructed with stone walls having alternate
string courses and an arch barrel of tiles fanned out on edge. The section
has a span of 0.65 m and height of between 1.30 m and 1.83 m. The culvert
is now infilled and preserved.
There are numerous examples of medieval bridges, some built by the
monasteries and their ‘brothers of the bridge’ whose skills are demonstrated
by the soaring arches of their monastery buildings. Many of these bridges
can be identified by having ribbed arches. Many of the medieval bridges
that are still in use, have been widened and strengthened to carry full traffic
loading and others have had weight restrictions imposed.
EVOLUTION OF STRUCTURAL FORM 27
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Fig. 4.7. There are a number of bridges having ecclesiastical or other build-
ings attached which have subsequently been dismantled or partly dis-
mantled leaving remnant foundations, etc.
With the development of landscaped gardens in the eighteenth century,
various types of ornamental structure were designed, including bridges
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
was the first long-span wrought iron structure and the first significant box
girder. It has been said to be the most influential structure of the nine-
teenth century.
Steel bridge construction was introduced in the second half of the nine-
teenth century, one of the first being constructed in The Netherlands in
1863. In Britain the Board of Trade imposed a ban which was not lifted until
32 EVOLUTION OF STRUCTURAL FORM
1877. The Forth Railway Bridge by Fowler and Baker (1890) was constructed
in steel plates of 51 N/mm2 tensile strength. In contrast wrought iron plates
then available were of 34 N/mm2 tensile strength. The structural form com-
prised two 521 m cantilever and suspended spans and it was by far the
longest then constructed and remains a gigantic structure for any era. In
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
having spans of 9.1, 15.2 and 9.1 m. Remedial work was carried out in 1956
and 1989. Despite being located across the River Axe, in a hostile marine
environment, the bridge has survived and is in continued use by ped-
estrians. Glenfinnan Viaduct on the West Highland railway having twenty-
one spans of 15 m, was constructed in 1897 and remains in continued use
after more than 100 years. At Wansford, an unreinforced arch bridge having
three spans of 15, 33 and 15 m, and a total length of 100 m was constructed
in 1930 to carry the A1 trunk road across the River Nene. One of the last
mass concrete bridges was Pilgrims Way Bridge across the Guildford by-
pass in Surrey, built in 1933, but no longer in use.
Reinforced concrete, in its various forms, was also introduced towards
the end of the nineteenth century, somewhat later than in other countries.
Homersfield Bridge, built across the River Waveney in Suffolk 1870, has a
single span of 16.5 m. It has a wrought iron frame encased in concrete and
mortar. In 1970, a new road was built and the old road was retained for
pedestrians. The bridge was refurbished in 1995 and stands as the oldest
surviving concrete bridge in Britain, see Fig. 4.12.
The earliest conventionally reinforced concrete bridge in Britain was built
in 1901 to the Hennébique system at Chewton Glen, Hampshire. The Panel
for Historic Engineering Works (PHEW) of the Institution of Civil Engineers
collected data for 414 concrete bridges built in Britain up to 1914. Of these,
the fate of only 187 could be discovered; forty-one were demolished, leaving
way companies in 1943, one having I-beams and a span of 13.1 m, the other
having box-beams and a span of 15.2 m. Nunn’s Bridge, Fishtoft, 1947,
having a span of 22.5 m, was the first fully post-tensioned bridge in Britain.
Rhinefield Bridge in the New Forest, one of the earliest recorded post-ten-
sioned segmented bridges was constructed in 1950 using the Gifford-Udall
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
180 years old and continuing to carry traffic, for example Union Bridge,
Horncliffe, see Fig. 4.17.
In recent years the early suspended bridges have come to be regarded
as heritage structures, requiring special care and attention. There are a com-
paratively large number of suspension footbridges mostly over 60 years old
as very few have been constructed since the 1930s, see Fig. 4.18, for
example. Their significance has generally been overlooked and it is timely
to take them more seriously. Cable-stayed bridges have become popular in
recent years but there are only a few road bridges that are more than 40
years old.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Hinchcliffe, E. (1994) Packhorse Bridges of England. Cicerone Press, Milnthorpe,
Cumbria.
Chapter 5
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Ancillaries
NOTICES
The signs or notices attached to bridges, or located nearby, are usually
constructed in cast iron and therefore require little maintenance other than
occasional cleaning and painting in suitably contrasting heritage colours to
enable them to be easily read. The messages given on many signs have
become years if not centuries out of date, others are contemporary with
the present time. Information on the older signs is invariably of interest as
it is informative of bygone days and expressed in quaint English.
Military action and civil unrest have often put bridges at risk and this is
sometimes reflected in old notices. For example, during the reign of George
IV there were periods of unrest when bridges were damaged sufficient for
it to become a transportable offence, as evidenced by Fig. 5.1. There are
about sixteen bridges in Dorset still fitted with these cast iron transpor-
tation warnings.
In later years, the main risk to bridges was seen to be from the weights
of steam traction engines which were many times more than the horse-
drawn carts and carriages hitherto. The notice in Fig. 5.2 is typical of those
posted at the time.
40 ANCILLARIES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
divert attention from the signs of more immediate importance. In any case,
the style of the historic plate, its colour and the size of lettering should be
indicative of its content.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
each containing an iron bed fixed to the walls. It can be visited by special
arrangement. The inset to Fig. 5.9 is an informative plate installed by the
local preservation trust:
Town Bridge dates from 13th century and was doubled in width in 1769. The
17th century lock-up may have replaced a medieval chapel. The weather vane
is known as The Bradford Gudgeon. The bridge is in the care of Wiltshire
County Council.
The chapel on Rotherham Bridge dates from 1483. After the dissolution,
it became an almshouse, then a gaol in 1826, then a tobacconist shop, and
in 1924 it was restored as a chapel.
The chapel on Wakefield Bridge dates from 1358. It is believed to have
been built by King Edward IV in memory of his father, the Duke of York,
who was killed in a battle near to the bridge. Nowadays it is consecrated
and used for religious services.
The fortified gatehouse on Monnow Bridge, Monmouth, dates from 1296
and was for collecting tolls to raise money for building walls to protect the
46 ANCILLARIES
upper part of the town. It figured in the Civil War and was garrisoned in 1839
at a time of unrest. Llagua Bridge on the Welsh border has what appears to
be the remains of a fortification or chapel.
There are records of bridges having fortified gateways, for example Old
London Bridge had a gate at its southern end. However, there are no sur-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
vivors.
TOLL-HOUSES
The funding of maintenance and repair of bridges was often through the
collection of tolls. Likewise construction of new bridges was funded in this
way. As an aid to the collection, toll-houses or toll-booths were constructed,
many of which are still surviving. Unlike chantry chapels, they were usually
freestanding and built at the approaches to the bridge. The collection of
tolls was gradually phased out, but in 1922 there were still 127 toll bridges.
Since then there have been a number of major bridges constructed and
funded by tolls, for example Forth Road Bridge and Skye Bridge in Scotland,
Cleddau Bridge in Wales, Severn Crossing, Queen Elizabeth II and Humber
Bridges in England. There are also historic bridges run by trusts and private
individuals that are funded by tolls, for example Clifton Bridge.
Toll-houses were generally built in the style of the bridge, some were plain
and others ornate. Some were little more than wooden kiosks, others were
permanent stone or brick buildings providing a home for the toll-collector.
Where tolls are still being collected maintenance can be funded from the
revenue. This is exemplified by Clifton Bridge which, although limited to 4
tonne vehicles, sees a high volume of traffic requiring a modern method of
collection. Fig. 5.10 shows the original listed booths and automatic barriers
at its western approach.
In contrast, where tolls are no longer collected there can be financial prob-
lems as the main concern of maintenance is to ensure that the bridge can
safely be used and there is no dedicated income stream to support mainte-
nance of ancillaries. It is desirable for the toll buildings to be used for some
purpose, as otherwise they quickly become scruffy, attract vandalism and
require additional maintenance.
Toll collection on the masonry arch bridge across the River Avon at
Bathampton is by the traditional method operating from the toll-house
shown in Fig. 5.11. Current toll charges are displayed prominently. Historic
charges displayed on a separate notice contain such gems as: ‘Wheelchairs
drawn by hand 2d (old pence): Wheelchairs drawn by donkey or pony 3d’.
An example of a former toll-house at Widcome is shown in Fig. 5.12. The
original footbridge served by this toll-house collapsed through overloading
in 1877. The present wrought iron structure replacing it retained both the
toll-house and its nickname of the Half Penny Bridge reflecting the toll
charge. The toll-house has three storeys, two being below the level of the
bridge deck, and is now a domestic dwelling.
Cleveland Bridge across the River Avon at Bath was constructed with no
less than four toll-houses in the style of Doric temples with pedimental porti-
coes, see Fig. 5.13. They have three storeys with access from the towpath
and at the upper road level. Ultimately the income from tolls became insuf-
ficient to manage the bridge and as an economy measure only one collection
VISITOR CENTRES 47
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
point was used. The bridge was taken over by the city council in 1925 and
tolls were removed in 1929. The toll-houses were disused for many years
before being refurbished and modernised as domestic dwellings in 2000.
The wooden toll-booths or kiosks at each end of Ordish’s Albert Bridge,
in London are in the ornate style of the bridge, see Fig. 5.14. They have been
disused for many years and now present a rather forlorn appearance of
no longer having a purpose. The painted wooden structures require more
maintenance than masonry and inevitably become untidy towards the end
of maintenance periods.
VISITOR CENTRES
Visitor centres are becoming an important feature on some of the more
significant bridges as they are very popular with the general public and
tourists. They provide information about the construction of the bridge, its
history and importance as a structure in a format that is easily assimilated
by all-comers. Such exhibitions educate people about the heritage and
engineering of the bridges. If efficiently managed, visitor centres can cover
their cost through entry fees and sale of books, souvenirs, etc.
48 ANCILLARIES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
PILLARS
Pillars or columns constructed at each end of a bridge provide attractive
architectural features marking a visual termination of the parapets. Pillars
have traditionally acted as anchors to strengthen the run of parapets and
protect them from impact from horse-drawn vehicles. They have also for-
med the gateways sometimes installed on medieval bridges forming part of
the city defences. In more recent times, pillars have been erected to support
security gates and some of the bridges to Thames islands still have such
gates.
For some years, pillars continued to be constructed for architectural
reasons to express the solidity and stability of a major bridge, for example
Sydney Harbour Bridge has enormous but hollow obelisks for this purpose.
The bridge at Amarante across River Tamaga in Portugal has ornate pillars
PILLARS 49
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
having the intriguing feature that each sits on five stone spheres of 300 mm
diameter. The pillars have been used as lamp standards to support lights
as shown in Fig. 5.16. Amarante Bridge was the location of hard fought
battles against French troops in 1809.
Elvetham Hall Bridge located in a private park in Hampshire, has brick
pillars supporting wrought iron gates. The pillars are decorated with stone
work and three courses of black bricks contrasting with the light red bricks
50 ANCILLARIES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
of the bulk of the pillars. They are topped with ornate stone cappings and
carved finials, see Fig. 5.17.
The Victorian pillars and remnant foundations shown in Fig. 5.18 mark the
location of a three-span masonry arch bridge long since demolished. It is
evident from the angle of inclination of the pillars on the far bank that its
foundations were inadequate and this may have been a contributory cause
for the need to demolish the bridge. It was a nice touch to leave the pillars,
as well as the foundations of the two piers in the water to create a ‘ruin’ in
the appropriate spatial environment of parkland.
Lambeth Bridge across the River Thames in London has tall but rather
minimalist pillars with finials typical of the uncluttered design and architec-
ture of the time see Fig. 5.19. This was one of the last bridges to have pillars
as they went out of fashion during the 1930s when there was a desire to
express the dynamism and speed of motor vehicles. Obelisks and heavy
abutments were discarded and designs set out to express the idea of the
road streaking off into the landscape. Maillart’s celebrated Salginatobel
Bridge of 1929 was one of the first to achieve this and led the new move-
ment.
Pillars have both historic and architectural interest and merit preser-
vation on occasions when a bridge has to be demolished. It is not unduly
challenging to incorporate them in new structures as they can be free-stand-
ing and need not be incompatible with a modern replacement bridge.
PAVILIONS
The architectural desire to express the importance of a bridge and give an
otherwise utilitarian structure some presence was sometimes achieved by
the construction of ornate pavilions; examples include the Balcombe Rail
Viaduct in Sussex and Rochester Bridge in Kent, shown in Fig. 5.20.
ACCESS FEATURES 53
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
ACCESS FEATURES
Bridges are rarely constructed with built-in access for maintenance work.
For the small-span masonry arch bridges, access is usually relatively easy
but for longer spans and suspended bridges it can present a problem. Use
of specialised mobile access equipment can be helpful in many cases but
sometimes the only access is by erection of scaffolding which is expensive
and can be disruptive to traffic.
Access is a problem for suspended bridges and particularly the chains
and cables. On Clifton Bridge this has been tackled by unobtrusively fitting
a small diameter cable to the chains to provide a practical fitment for a
safety harness, see Fig. 5.21. Clifton Bridge also has a mobile gantry to
enable the underside of the superstructure to be inspected and maintained.
This is a luxury rarely enjoyed by historic bridges.
On the original construction, access to towers was usually by ladders
having no safety cages and exposed to the wind and rain. The Transporter
Bridge at Newport Gwent was accessed in this way and it was just possible
for inexperienced climbers, such as the author, to inspect the upper levels
of the structure. In recent years access has been upgraded, the stairs and
ladders having been fitted with handrails and mesh panels, and the timber
54 ANCILLARIES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
walkway at the top has been replaced by mesh flooring to provide a non-
slip surface in all weathers. Such changes have to be designed to have mini-
mal impact on the original structure and on structures such as this must
receive the approval of the heritage authority.
The Forth Rail Bridge, famous for its painting cycle, was originally
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Parapets
GLOSSARY
Balustrade Ornamental parapet most commonly of cast iron,
stone or concrete composed of a horizontal coping
member supported by vertical pillars termed,
balusters.
Baluster Vertical members in a balustrade, sometimes
referred to as spindles. Balusters usually have a
circular cross-section of varying diameter being
greatest at around mid-height.
Die stone Solid members positioned at the ends and, for
longer spans, at intervals between balusters in a
balustrade. Provide an appearance of strength
which is not necessarily achieved.
Pilaster Similar to a die stone, but thicker than the rest of
the parapet. Also a feature of solid parapets.
Railings Lightweight balustrade having slender members of
iron, steel or wood, often prefabricated.
Coping The top course of stone on a masonry wall or
balustrade.
Pedestal The bottom course of stone in a balustrade
Refuge Recess formed by widening the parapet and
pavement to enable pedestrians to shelter from
traffic. In later bridges refuges were more of an
ornament than necessity.
58 PARAPETS
BACKGROUND
From local records it is evident that many of the early bridges, clapper
bridges and masonry arches, were narrow and constructed with parapets
that were little more than a kerb. One of the reasons suggested for having
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
low parapets is the fear that low slung packs on pack horses could hit a
higher parapet. Another likely reason is the need for economy particularly
in the poorer parts of the country as the funding of bridge construction and
maintenance has invariably posed problems. In some places the bridges had
parapets from an early time, for example there is documentary evidence of
there being parapets on Bedford Bridge in 1526. Over the years, as road
systems have been developed to meet increased traffic, bridges have been
successively widened and parapets have been added. In some cases the
retrospective addition of masonry parapets is evident from the different
styles of construction in relation to the original. Nevertheless, there remains
a number of bridges having no parapets usually in remote locations, for
example Passfield Sluice Bridge, a seventeenth century structure in
Hampshire, see Fig. 6.1.
Many of the early parapets were timber as evidenced by the three-span
masonry arch bridge at Uckfield in Sussex c1850, as shown in Fig. 6.2. Tilford
Bridge in Surrey still has a wooden parapet which was carefully refurbished
in 1998, as shown in Fig. 6.3. Wooden parapets were often constructed with
outstands to provide lateral stability and located outboard of the structure
to leave a maximum useable width of carriageway. At this time parapets
would have been erected to provide people with assurance, particularly
under windy conditions when there could be a fear of being blown off and,
more likely, at dusk or darkness when they could simply walk off in error
as lighting did not come until the late nineteenth century, if at all on the
country bridges.
Simple wrought iron railings were sometimes fitted retrospectively as on
Barton Clapper Bridge in Wiltshire, shown in Fig. 6.4. Here, there was no
of the bridge. The ornate bronze fittings and adornments are particularly
attractive as shown in Fig. 6.6.
Stone parapets are very common for masonry arch bridges and have per-
formed well over the years. Most were originally constructed using a lime-
based mortar having sufficient flexibility to enable the assemblage to cope
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
the interface between the plating and the asphalt surfacing of the roadway
or pavement. At this location detritus and de-icing salt can collect during
winter maintenance and there are cycles of wetting and drying which pro-
vide ideal conditions for corrosion to occur.
Fabricated steel railings introduced in the 1920s have performed well.
BACKGROUND 65
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
They have the advantage that there are no interfaces or other traps where
corrosion can occur in steelwork above deck level. They are fairly easy to
maintain as they are accessible for cleaning and painting. There are, how-
ever, corrosion traps on some types of connection to the deck.
Concrete parapets were introduced in the early 1900s. They followed the
normal course of events and copied the structural forms of the established
masonry parapets. Some were solid like a masonry wall, some were com-
posed of cast balustrades like the more prestigious stone ones, for example
see Fig. 6.12. Others took advantage of the possibilities of reinforced con-
crete to have structural forms in a more modern idiom, see Fig. 6.13. Later
designs incorporated precast units, some being composed of relatively thin
panels. The thickness of cover concrete over the steel reinforcement was
generally very low and by current understanding provided little protection
from corrosion. Nevertheless, performances have been surprisingly good
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
and there are many surviving precast concrete parapets that are 50 to 100
years old. However, few are sufficiently strong to satisfy current require-
ments for vehicle impact.
Composite parapets having concrete posts and steel rails were also used.
The example shown in Fig. 6.14 is of unusually economic construction typi-
cal of the 1940’s. Steel mesh has been added at a later date to conform to
updated requirements. The onset of corrosion in the reinforcement steel in
the posts is not surprising bearing in mind the low thickness of cover and
exposure to over 50 years weathering and de-icing salts.
Parapets on suspension bridges were sometimes designed to contribute
structurally having the hanger cables attached to the top flange of a truss
or plated parapet. Examples include Albert Bridge and Chelsea Bridge, Lon-
don. This system has the advantage that the hanger connections and struc-
tural members can more easily be inspected and maintained. Steel suspen-
sion footbridges, such as those built in the 1920s and 1930s by David Rowell
had lattice trusses having the dual role of stiffening the superstructure and
acting as parapets.
Some precast concrete footbridges, also constructed in the 1920s and
1930s, had tall side panels that acted structurally as beams as well as para-
pets. They invariably had overhead bracing to provide lateral stiffness. The
bracing could also be used to carry lighting. The side panels incidentally
blocked the view from the footbridge providing the pedestrians with a
rather gloomy tunnel-like environment.
REQUIREMENTS OF PARAPETS
Parapets on the older bridges were designed as guards to delineate the edge
of the bridge and provide a degree of protection against horse-drawn
vehicles breaking through. Design strength was a matter of judgement by
the engineer and the local requirements of the bridge owner.
Nowadays, it is recognised that parapets are subject to a variety of types
of loading and are required to fulfil a number of requirements, some of them
occasional, depending on usage and location. These can be summarised
as follows:
쐌 Restraint of suicides
쐌 Good aesthetic appearance.
Many of the parapets constructed during the railway era were designed as
part of the load-bearing structure, for example half-through and through-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
break wooden structures, particularly if they have aged and weathered. This
is of concern to authorities having bridges which are regularly exposed to
popular events, such as sporting activities. In some cases the bridges have
to be closed to spectators on the day of the event as a precautionary meas-
ure. In others, investigative work is being carried out to develop a method
70 PARAPETS
APPEARANCE
Parapets play a significant if not crucial role in the appearance of bridges.
Prior to the standardisation, which commenced in the 1960s, they were
designed individually to be compatible with the rest of the structure. This
has resulted in a rich heritage of parapets reflecting the different eras and
uses of materials. Unfortunately parapets have not always been allocated
sufficient maintenance funding due to more pressing needs and, on some
of the more remote bridges, were allowed to become scruffy and damaged.
CONSERVATION 71
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
In more recent times this has been redressed to some extent and there are
notable examples where damaged or lost sections have been replaced to
match the originals, corrosion has been treated and ironwork repainted.
Examples are given later in this chapter.
In addition to the repetitive details along their lengths, parapets often
have ornamentation and features such as the coat-of-arms and name of the
local authority, date of construction, names of the engineer and contractor,
etc, as exemplified in Figs 6.18 and 6.19.
Parapets sometimes incorporated refuges where pedestrians could shel-
ter from the traffic. In medieval times, on bridges having no pavements,
refuges were probably essential to safety, but the more modern versions
built in Victorian times are ornamental and nowadays serve to provide
people with a space where they can pause to enjoy the view, if they can
spare the time. On narrow bridges refuges continue to have functional value
as they can obviate the need to widen the structure to provide dedicated
lanes for pedestrians, cyclists and horses. New refuges can be created on
approaches to existing narrow bridges. Examples of refuges are shown in
Figs 6.20 and 6.21.
Sadly, refuges are no longer constructed and bridges are seen as a part
of the road to be traversed without pause. Modern parapets are invariably
designed with their predominant members horizontal and having an appear-
ance similar to the rest of the road, so that bridges have become anonymous
and unnoticed by travellers.
CONSERVATION
Conservation has become an important issue as it has become recognised
that it is important to retain the appearance and originality of parapets.
72 PARAPETS
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Specialist restoration firms have tackled the problems and some interesting
and innovative schemes have been carried out. Some of the more common
methods of conservation used in practice are listed in Table 6.1. Clearly,
the different structural types and materials require different approaches as
outlined in the following sections.
CONSERVATION 73
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Timber
In principle wooden parapets can be maintained indefinitely in their as-built
form, provided due care is taken to ensure that ageing and deteriorated
members are replaced like-for-like and in good time. Deterioration of trusses
and parapets invariably initiates at connections and unprotected end grain,
74 PARAPETS
Iron
Repairs of cast iron and wrought iron parapets require careful attention to
detail in order to avoid losing originality and spoiling the appearance.
Cracked or broken cast iron can be repaired by cold stitching or welding,
as described in Chapter 9. The cold stitching process, illustrated in Figs 6.23
to 6.26, has been used successfully on a number of occasions to repair
cracked cast iron but is a highly specialised activity requiring a full under-
standing of the technical processes and experience.
Damaged or missing sections of cast iron parapets can be replaced by
using a remnant section as a pattern to enable new moulds and castings to
be made. It should be noted however that, when using an existing section
78 PARAPETS
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
as pattern, allowance must be made for the change in size due to thermal
effects. As an example, the cast iron parapets on the historic Homersfield
Bridge in Suffolk (see Chapter 12) had deteriorated and been vandalised
over the years. Frost had weakened some of the footings, York stone copings
at the edge of the deck were damaged, and sections of the cast iron parapet
were missing. As part of the conservation work the stone copings were
removed and cleaned. The cast ironwork was also removed and restored.
Where sections were badly damaged or missing, moulds were made from
the best of the survivors and new castings produced. The refurbished para-
pets, shown in Fig. 6.27, are very fine and the repairs are indistinguishable
from the originals.
Masonry
Conservation of masonry parapets presents no particular difficulties and is
mainly a matter of replacing deteriorated stones like-for-like and repointing
with lime-based mortar. As for masonry arches, there have been some
rather poorly executed repairs in the past using ill-matched materials. For
example, bricks inserted into stonework and different types of brick into
brickwork. There have also been occasions when masonry coping stones
have been replaced with concrete. Actually, concrete coping stones can turn
out to be surprisingly successful as a reasonable colour match can usually
be obtained and weathering can be compatible. The differing characteristics
of concrete can be tolerated more readily in substituted copings than in the
mass of a masonry wall because they are located on a natural boundary
and have less interaction in terms of material properties and appearance.
Moreover, dense concrete copings are likely to provide better protection to
CONSERVATION 79
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
the body of the wall than all but the best types of stone. On the other hand
the apparent technical advantages are outweighed by the intrusion into a
heritage structure of a modern material and concrete copings would only
be acceptable on less sensitive bridges.
Maintenance of masonry balustrades may be necessitated by vehicular
damage or by erosion and deterioration of the sculpted stone. The latter
rarely involves all the balusters as the softer more vulnerable stone deterio-
rates first. An example of a recently repaired balustrade is shown in Fig. 6.28.
Concrete
As for all concrete structures, the most common mechanism of deterioration
in parapets is through corrosion of the steel reinforcement. This presents
a conservation problem that has not yet been satisfactorily addressed. The
steel reinforcement is invariably very close to the surface of the concrete
and sections may be thin, so that conventional patch repairs would be rela-
tively shallow in depth and ineffective in the long term. Repair methods
commonly used to date have involved removal of loose and salt-contami-
nated concrete, cleaning the reinforcement, and making good using a cemen-
titious or polymer-modified mortar. Criteria for selection and formulation of
the mortar have been concerned with factors such as workability, adhesion,
density, etc., but less attention has been paid to compatibility with the exist-
ing concrete and appearance. An example of patch repairs on a precast
parapet panel is shown in Fig. 6.29. The fresh repair is an entirely different
colour from the host materials and it remains to be seen as to whether it
will eventually weather to a more compatible appearance. It also remains
80 PARAPETS
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
able repair. The appearance of the concrete can be more easily matched
and in any case small differences are less pronounced when construction
joints separate the new and old surfaces. More importantly, there is an
opportunity to increase the thickness of cover to the reinforcement or sub-
stitute corrosion-resistant reinforcement, such as stainless steel, coated
bars or polymers. There is also an opportunity to provide additional
strength when this has been found to be required. Unfortunately there are
few occasions when this is practical, as concrete tends to deteriorate fairly
uniformly and it would be necessary to replace most if not all the members
rather than a few of the most damaged ones.
There have been several reported cases where concrete parapets have
had to be replaced. Salginatobel Bridge in Switzerland has parapets 1.1 m
high and only 100 to 160 mm thick. They are composed of thin concrete
panels and pillars having cross-sections of 150 mm ⫻ 600 mm. They were
designed as non-structural and simply prevent people from falling off. The
conservation authorities were very strict about maintaining originality as
the bridge is listed as an International Historic Civil Engineering Landmark
(as described in Chapter 12). Deteriorated sections of the parapets were
replaced to requirements that the original shape, irregular forming and the
tight dimensions were reproduced as closely as possible.
Donner Summit Bridge in California, USA, see also Chapter 12, has con-
crete balustrades which, along with other parts of the structure, had
deteriorated over the 70 years service life and exposure to de-icing salt and
ters. On the external face, where there are no mandatory restraints, the
topography matched more closely the original architecture.
Baltimore Street Bridge across Gwynns Falls in Baltimore, USA, see also
Chapter 12, had solid parapets composed of posts at 3 m spacings and
panels having an air gap at the bottom so that any impact loading would
be resisted by the posts alone. Furthermore, the parapets were widened at
intervals to form bases for lamp standards in a manner that was in violation
of current federal requirements. The replacement parapet was designed to
meet the up to date requirements, but with an appearance as similar as
possible to the original. The main revision was to close up the airspace at
the bottom so that reinforcement could be added and horizontal impact
load shared with the posts. The inside faces of the parapet had reliefs to
represent the original air gaps.
Hillhurst Louise Bridge in Calgary, Canada, see also Chapter 12, suffered
deterioration over 75 years service due primarily to a combination of freeze–
thaw damage and, to a lesser extent, alkali–aggregate reaction. Among other
requirements, it was necessary to replace the concrete balustrades with
precast units having an appearance similar to the originals. In order to meet
current requirements, it was necessary to modify the height and add vertical
steel bars between the balusters. The bars were fitted to reduce horizontal
gaps to less than 150 mm. They were protected from corrosion by being
galvanised and surface blasted to facilitate good adhesion for a finishing
coat of black urethane paint. The concrete components were precast indi-
vidually and prefabricated into 3.66 m lengths. The balusters were connec-
ted to the coping and pedestal by grouted rods through their centres. The
concrete was treated with a penetrative silane coating and two coats of
pigmented sealant. The prefabricated lengths were erected on site between
in situ cast pilasters. The undersides of the pedestals were shimmed and
the gap was filled by grouting after the pedestals had reached sufficient
strength.
STRENGTHENING
Strengthening old parapets against vehicular impacts, like conservation and
repair, requires special care to minimise change to the appearance of the
original structure. It usually requires the addition or substitution of new
material which in itself is fraught with problems and potential for spoiling
the appearance. Some types of parapet, for example timber, do not easily
lend themselves to being strengthened, while others are more suitable. In
general, authorities have tended to let well alone unless there is good reason
to do otherwise.
The County Surveyor’s Society carried out vehicular impact tests on
masonry parapets and, from the results, prepared guidelines on design and
assessment. Methods of strengthening masonry parapets were investigated.
STRENGTHENING 83
쐌 Reconstruction in the same form but using higher strength mortar. The
effects can be evaluated from charts prepared from the results of the
tests.
쐌 Reconstruction to a higher mass, by increased thickness or height. The
effects can be evaluated from charts.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
쐌 Point the mortar in masonry joints and grout dry stone parapets.
replaced with spheroidal graphite cast iron, grade 400/18 L20. The new cast-
ing was designed to have the same external appearance as the original, but
with improved connections between the 1.95 m long units and the addition
of internal stiffening. The parapet was connected to a new reinforced con-
crete deck by stainless steel bolts. This provided an altogether stronger con-
nection.
STRENGTHENING 85
Special attention was given to the paint as it was desired to return the
bridge to its original colour scheme. To this end, paint samples were
removed and analysed and it was found that the colour above deck had been
pale green. This was reproduced on the new parapets and lamp standards.
Internal reinforcement
Strengthening by introducing internal reinforcement can be carried out by
reconstructing the whole parapet or inserting reinforcement into the exist-
ing parapet. Naturally, reconstruction is less acceptable to heritage auth-
orities, but in some cases there is no alternative. This is exemplified by
North Bridge, Edinburgh constructed in 1896 and having under-strength cast
iron parapets by modern standards. The parapets were composed of 3.66
m long panels bolted to the steel deck at mid-points and to cast iron posts
at their ends. It was found that severe corrosion had occurred in the steel
deck. Also, the cast iron had an unfavourable chemical composition making
it brittle to impact loading. In consequence, the calculated strength under
lateral loading of the parapet was very low. After consideration of several
schemes it was decided to erect a P1 barrier along the parapet line, enclosed
by spheroidal graphite cast iron units detailed to match the original para-
pets. By agreement with the rail authority, the height was maintained
unchanged at 1.4 m, but the width had to be increased to accommodate the
100 mm wide longitudinal members of the P1 barriers. The profile of the
traffic-facing sides of the parapets was modified to reduce projecting details
from 50 mm to 25 mm to comply with regulations. The concrete deck was
86 PARAPETS
extended beneath the new parapet to provide protection for the steelwork
and seatings for the P1 barrier. The ductile cast iron parapets were esti-
mated as having lower first cost and lower maintenance replacement costs
than a GRP alternative scheme. In the final analysis the parapet work cost
65% of the total cost of renovating the bridge.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Additional barrier
In cases where it is not found to be feasible to strengthen parapets by other
means, and there is sufficient available space, freestanding crash barriers
can be erected at the boundary between road and pavement. Although this
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
is generally regarded as being unsightly and spoiling the view of the parapet
from the road, it has the advantage of providing protection for pedestrians
and accidental wheel loading on under-strength footways. It also leaves the
old parapet in its original and unspoiled condition and the external profile
of the bridge is unchanged. Examples include Queen’s Avenue Bridge, Alder-
shot, where the original parapet of ornate cast iron had been refurbished,
as shown in Fig. 6.32, Farnham Road Bridge, Guildford, which had brick para-
pets, and Woodbridge Old, Guildford, which had reinforced concrete para-
pets.
On Gala Water Bridge in Scotland, a standard barrier was erected with
imitation Georgian iron railings fitted to the outer facing side. This provided
an external appearance compatible with the bridge, but the view from pass-
ing vehicles was of course modified.
As an alternative to the installation of a standard barrier, Battersea Bridge
across the Thames in London, has an 800 mm high ‘pedestrian guard’,
designed to be compatible with the Victorian decoration on the existing
parapets and on the rest of the bridge. In addition dished kerbs have been
installed, as shown in Fig. 6.33.
On a narrow bridge, standard barriers would have an obtrusive appear-
ance. However, the effect can be lightened by a modified design such as
that used for Battersea Bridge.
Safety kerbs
Profiled safety kerbs of increased height provide a restraint to errant
vehicles albeit not as effectively as a standard barrier. The effectiveness is
dependent on the speed of vehicle, angle of approach and whether road
conditions are wet or dry. The Trief Kerb is of precast concrete, 324 mm
high and has an edge profile designed to provide frictional resistance which
decelerates an impacting vehicle. Trief Kerbs have been installed on a num-
ber of bridges in Sandwell and on Battersea Bridge, London.
On Cleveland Bridge, Bath, the cast iron parapets were found to be inad-
equately connected to the deck and under strength. An initial scheme to
replace the original cast iron was shelved in view of the historic value of
the parapets which had been constructed in 1827. The revised scheme
incorporated a high safety kerb in cast iron. The units were designed to be
compatible with the parapets and had vertical fluting to relieve their profile
and special details at each end to make a positive statement in harmony
with the lodges, where tolls were formerly collected, see Fig. 6.34. The para-
pets were provided with improved connection to the deck so that all the
posts would act as cantilevers and resist lateral loading. Broken and cracked
components were repaired or replaced.
mismatch of materials and proportions. The railway beneath the bridge has
subsequently been closed so that the parapet has become even more out
of context.
90 PARAPETS
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Guidance Note for the Assessment and Design of unreinforced Masonry Vehicle Para-
pets (1995). County Surveyors’ Society.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Chapter 7
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Masonry bridges
GLOSSARY
Intrados The lower face of the arch barrel
Extrados The upper face of the arch barrel
Springing The plane, usually extra strong, on which the ends
of the arch sit
Spandrel The longitudinal edge wall, which sits on the
barrel and retains the fill
Arch barrel The main structural element of an arch bridge
Corbel Structural element projecting from arch face
(usually to support widening)
Pattress plate Load-spreading plate fitted at ends of tie-bars to
restrain spandrels
Spreader beam Load spreading strip over the length of the span
and fitted at ends of tie-bars to restrain the
spandrels.
Voussoirs Wedge-shaped stones that together form the arch
barrel
Anchors Grouted steel reinforcement bars
Gothic arch Arch having a pointed shape
Masonry Bricks or stones
Starling Piles, usually timber, driven into river bed
upstream of bridge pier to provide protection
against floating material.
Cutwater Wedge-shaped abutment to piers to divide the
water flow and provide protection against floating
material and water erosion.
Clapper bridge Primitive river crossing composed of flat stone
slabs laid across raised stone piers.
Packhorse bridge Masonry arch bridge on packhorse route, typically
no wider than 2 m and constructed mainly in the
period 1650 to 1800.
92 MASONRY BRIDGES
BACKGROUND
There are some 40,000 masonry arch bridges in Britain on roads, railways
and canals and an unknown number of clapper bridges. The oldest surviving
arch bridges date back to before the fourteenth century and there are many
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
fine examples still in use. The early bridges had relatively short spans, were
often multispan, and typically constructed with random masonry, see
Fig. 7.1 for example. There were many fine river bridges built in the eight-
eenth and nineteenth century exemplified by the work of, for example, Smea-
ton, Telford, Rennie and Harrison. They were a departure from the earlier
rudimentary bridges, as they had longer spans and were often embellished
with architectural features.
Over the years masonry arch bridges have experienced various changes
as they have been successively widened and strengthened so that many
are now far from original. This must be taken into account when planning
conservation work.
Many of the early bridges had no parapets, or parapets that were inad-
equate to meet modern containment requirements. Various methods of
strengthening and reconstruction have been used, many resulting in loss of
originality and an ugly appearance as described in more detail in Chapter 6.
Clapper bridges have received less ‘modernisation’ as they are generally
in remote locations and only used by pedestrians and animals. Nevertheless,
in some cases, rather ugly railings have been installed. There are a few clap-
per bridges big enough to carry vehicular traffic, for example Park End
Bridge in North Yorkshire and Pencarrow Bridge in Cornwall, shown in
Fig. 7.2.
As mentioned in Chapter 4, there are some 189 packhorse bridges ident-
ified in England. In addition, there are many others that have been widened
so that they are no longer easily recognisable.
Some notable masonry bridges are listed in Table 7.4 at the end of this
chapter.
Performance
Masonry bridges are a very durable form of construction, requiring com-
paratively modest levels of maintenance. There have been few structural
failures and those that have occurred have been mainly through storm dam-
age when swollen and fast running rivers have caused substructures to fail
BACKGROUND 95
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
CONSERVATION
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Masonry bridges have been managed and maintained using a range of tech-
niques, some meeting the requirements of conservation, some not. As with
all types of bridge, the better known ones have been looked after with care
and the masonry has been maintained using techniques developed for his-
toric buildings. The lesser bridges have been treated differently as the objec-
tives of highway authorities have been to ensure that they meet the require-
ments of contemporary traffic within limited budgets. Methods of
conservation are described in the following section and summarised in
Table 7.1.
Replacement masonry
With the deterioration in air quality in recent years, acid rain and the use
of de-icing salt during cold weather, masonry has been eroding and degrad-
ing much more rapidly than in the past. When the damage becomes excess-
ive, it is necessary to take action, but the situation should be properly stud-
ied beforehand to identify the cause of the damage. For example, it may be
CONSERVATION 97
Penetrant coatings
On occasions when the surfaces of stonework are deteriorating and eroding,
penetrative coatings can be used to stabilise the situation. Suitable coatings
100 MASONRY BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
in the wrong circumstances, they can worsen the situation. For example, it
is not uncommon for salty water to soak into the masonry from the roadway
during winter months and remain in the pore structure. Under these circum-
stances, the application of coatings can trap the salt and subsequent build-
up can lead to surface layers of masonry spalling off. Also coatings have a
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
finite life of about 15 years before they become ineffective and require
renewal. At present there are no guidelines on how to assess the coatings
and decide when they have become ineffective.
Sprayed mortars
Damaged masonry can be repaired using sprayed mortar, sometimes sup-
ported by reinforcement mesh. The process is outlined in the Conservation
section of Chapter 12. The process provides a strong cover of high density
which is resistive to any further environmental damage. It was originally
developed for repairing concrete and is well suited to this purpose as it
is a compatible material. In the as-sprayed state it can have a roughcast
appearance and a colour and texture different to most types of concrete
and masonry. In consequence, it is best applied to parts of the bridge that
are not in the normal sightlines. Sprayed mortar is less suitable for appli-
cation to softer and more porous types of sandstone and limestone, because
the interfacial bond between the dissimilar materials is more likely to fail.
Care has to be taken to ensure that there is no leakage behind the repair
otherwise there is a risk that the hard skin will crack and fall off. Sprayed
mortar can be unsightly and is not now accepted for heritage structures.
Examples of sprayed mortar are given in Figs 7.9 and 7.10.
Cementitious patches
Locally damaged masonry is sometimes repaired using cementitious or poly-
mer-modified materials. A cementitious repair material may typically be
composed of cement of suitable colour, lime and stone dust proportioned
to provide adequate strength and a good colour match. It is essential to
prepare the base material to provide good mechanical keying and a surface
free of any friable material. As with sprayed mortar, there is a risk of cre-
ating a hard and incompatible coating which will eventually fall off.
Although the repair material can be formulated to have the same appear-
ance as the masonry, this can change when the structure is wet, particularly
if a polymer-modified formulation is used. Also, the repair material is likely
to weather to a different appearance.
for example live loading causing a flexible arch barrel to deflect in a vertical
plane relative to a less flexible spandrel wall. A common method of dealing
with cracked arch barrels is to stitch across the crack with short tie-bars
or anchors.
The construction activity is the same as for installation of anchors to
stitch together ring separation. However, if the flexibility of the arch barrel
is left unchanged, the problem may reappear elsewhere. It follows that it is
prudent to add stiffness to the barrel. This can be achieved by methods
such as reinforcing the barrel, or reducing the stresses transmitted to the
barrel by increasing the thickness of the surfacing.
However, the cause of the cracking should always be investigated and
properly diagnosed before proceeding as stitching should not be considered
an automatic solution. In some cases the cracking is evidence of articulation
and best left alone.
Arch barrels have sometimes been stabilised by external reinforcement.
In the example shown in Fig. 7.13 steel rails have been used to strengthen
the barrel in a lateral direction and steel plates have been positioned against
the face of the barrel to act as pattresses and distribute any lateral stress
that may be generated. This method was occasionally used in the early part
of the twentieth century. In the example shown in Fig. 7.13, its appearance
CONSERVATION 105
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
has weathered to become compatible with the bridge but the effect has
been spoiled by subsequent repairs using ill-matched bricks.
Skirfa Beck Bridge in North Yorkshire, had a severely distorted arch with
outward separation and displaced voussoir stones as shown in Fig. 7.17.
After consideration of alternative methods, fill was removed from the
deformed side and the arch was jacked back into the correct profile, the
masonry was repointed, a concrete saddle was cast on to the arch barrel
and the fill was replaced. Use of rapid-setting cement in the concrete
enabled high early strength to be obtained so that the time of closure to
traffic was minimised. This achieved a good repair that retained the original
material and appearance while enhancing the strength of the bridge at mod-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
est cost.
In an extreme case, Prestwood Bridge, a brick arch across the Stafford-
shire and Worcestershire canal, constructed by Brindley circa 1770 had
fallen into a state of disrepair and the arch had become so badly distorted
and weakened that it was closed to traffic. The parapets became unsound
and were removed almost to the level of the road surface. Part of the span-
drel had bulged by 100 mm in relation to the arch barrel. It was decided to
rebuild the bridge as closely as possible to its original form. As part of the
demolition, TRL was invited to load the bridge to collapse. Line loading
was applied at quarter-span where the arch was deformed downwards and
therefore most vulnerable to additional load. The bridge exhibited a surpris-
ingly high level of remnant strength and eventually failed at 22.8 tonne. (The
assessed strength using the Military Engineering Experimental Establish-
ment (MEXE) method was a permissible axle load of 2 tonne, the predicted
collapse load using a sophisticated mechanism analysis was 17.3 tonne.) It
follows that distorted arches may not be as weak as they sometimes appear
albeit this is not a margin of strength that can always be assumed. The
bridge was subsequently reconstructed to be as close as possible to its
original form.
Reconstruction
Partial or total reconstruction is an expensive activity and is usually con-
fined to bridges of special interest. Moreover it is not favoured by heritage
authorities, except as a last resort when the alternative is replacement by
a modern structure. On occasions when reconstruction is carried out, it
should incorporate as much of the original structure and material as poss-
ible so that the appearance and texture is unchanged. At the same time,
those bridges carrying normal traffic should be improved to the extent that
they have the capacity to carry full traffic loading.
Laigh Milton Viaduct in Ayrshire is a good example of careful and correct
reconstruction. It is the oldest surviving public railway viaduct having first
carried traffic in 1811 and is therefore of special historic interest. It had
been neglected for many years and reached the stage of imminent collapse
when it was partially reconstructed and re-opened in 1996. The original
masonry was re-used and where this was not possible, new masonry of simi-
lar type was introduced. Lime mortar was used in the reconstruction. A 0.3-
m hogged distortion was replicated in one of the arches. The spandrels
were infilled with mass concrete to waterproofing level. Undercut piers were
secured by reinforced concrete collars.
Tilford Bridge in Surrey was constructed in the thirteenth century and is
a listed structure. Two of the arches were reconstructed in 1998. Care was
taken to use original techniques; the stonework was random ironstone and
a prescribed lime mortar was used. There was an added complication during
autumnal weather when it was necessary to erect a canvas tent and install
CONSERVATION 109
heaters to aid the curing of the lime mortar. During the work, a seventh
arch was discovered. Archaeologists carried out a watching brief during the
dismantling phase but nothing of significance was discovered. A view of the
reconstructed bridge showing the cantilevered wooden parapet is shown
in Fig. 7.18.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
crete to reduce the early thermal cracking and plastic shrinkage. The con-
crete was reinforced with polypropylene fibres, rather than steel, in order
to reduce the possibility of the concrete attracting increased bending stress
to the masonry.
WIDENING 111
WIDENING
The early masonry bridges were rather narrow and by the eighteenth cen-
tury the more intensively used structures had to be widened. Tymsill Bridge,
a single span structure in Bedfordshire, provides an interesting and fairly
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Contiguous structures
out in sympathy with the original structure, for example the fourteenth cen-
tury nine-span arch bridge at Bradford-on-Avon had two Gothic arches and
the rest semi-circular. When the bridge was widened in the seventeenth
century with arches of matching spans, all were semi-circular so that two
of them butted against Gothic arches creating an unnecessary clash in
styles. Design of such a mismatch against a 300-year-old bridge would
almost certainly attract adverse criticism in present times. However, the
new part was constructed in the same type of stone and has weathered over
the years causing the mismatch to become quaint and acceptable rather
than ugly. In fact, the original bridge probably had nine Gothic arches of
which seven were reconstructed at some earlier and unrecorded date so
that the widening followed the same strategy. In contrast, Barton Bridge
located about 800 m downstream has survived in its original state with four
Gothic arches, see Fig. 7.1.
Stokeford Bridge, a four-span structure across the River Avon, was wid-
ened in 1929 from 3.2 m to 7.6 m and again in 1964 to 9.5 m between para-
pets. The first widening was in mass and reinforced concrete having all vis-
ible areas faced in the same type of stone and to the exact detail as the
original. The second widening incorporated curved beams and was also
faced in stone to the same detail. An overslab was laid over the whole area,
so that there was no potential for leaking connections. The bridge was suf-
ficiently tall and long to be widened without changing its proportions to an
unacceptable extent. The materials have weathered well and the connection
between new and old parts has become seamless.
Widening schemes have usually been designed with little or no structural
connection between the adjacent structures. In consequence, longitudinal
cracking has sometimes developed at the interface. This is usually cosmetic
and best left alone, because the two halves may have different stiffness
under traffic loading so that structural connections could develop high local
stresses leading to cracking and failure. In cases where the longitudinal
cracking is reflected in the running surface or permits leakage through the
structure, it may be appropriate to take other action such as overslabbing.
On occasions when there is good reason to have a structural connection,
it can be provided by techniques such as insertion of transverse anchors
to tie together the new and old arch barrels.
Widening in more recent times has sometimes been less pleasing. In the
1930s, reinforced concrete became in vogue and a typical widening scheme
of this era is shown in Fig. 7.21. Here a concrete portal extension has been
cast against a nineteenth century stone arch. The differing materials and
geometries have created an ugly and unnecessary clash in styles in a scenic
rural location. Whereas the stone extension at Bradford-on-Avon had mel-
lowed with time, 60 years’ weathering of the concrete has, if anything, wors-
ened it to a scruffy ‘downtown’ appearance.
There are cases where ancient bridges were widened by the construction
of contiguous structures and subsequently restored to their original state.
WIDENING 113
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
For example, Rotherham Chantry Bridge, dating from 1483, was widened in
1768. In 1921, parts of the structure were found to be defective and it was
decided to build a new bridge a few metres upstream and the work was
carried out in 1928–1929. The additional structure was removed from the
ancient chantry bridge and the parapets reconstructed on the original line
using old stone and new coping.
Marton Bridge in Warwickshire, dating from 1414, is the oldest bridge on
a trunk road (but due to be detrunked). The bridge is 80 m long having two
river arches of 4.2 m span and two 2.7 m flood arches. It originally had a
width of 4 m with no footways. In 1926 it was widened to 13 m by the
addition of a reinforced concrete portal span of 9.7 m framing the two main
arches but concealing the rest of the structure, see Fig. 7.22. The original
ashlar stone parapet was transferred to the new concrete structure. In the
1990s, the concrete structure was found to be inadequate to carry 40 tonne
vehicles and it was decided to construct a new vehicular bridge a few metres
to the north. In 1999–2000, the concrete structure was dismantled to reveal
original stonework on the north side of the ancient bridge, see Fig. 7.23.
Unfortunately some of the stone had been damaged by the strong cement
mortar used in 1926, and had to be replaced. The medieval mortar was
chemically analysed so that a similar mix could be used in the reconstruc-
tion. The parapet was carefully dismantled and rebuilt on the original line.
Archaeologists were present during the work, to record features and arte-
facts as they were revealed. The ancient bridge is now restricted to ped-
estrians. This is an excellent example of the restoration of an ancient monu-
ment.
114 MASONRY BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Separated structures
In a number of cases, arch bridges have been indirectly widened by con-
struction of a separated structure to take traffic in one direction, leaving
the original bridge to take traffic in the other direction. This is more satisfac-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Cantilevered structures
Widening by cantilevered additions can enable the original width of the
bridge to be used by vehicles and the new part by pedestrians. It can be
on one side or both sides of the bridge depending on requirements. An
example of the former is Tilford Bridge in Surrey, shown in Fig. 7.18.
Newton Cap Bridge, Bishop Auckland, a grade I listed structure built in
1388, originally had a carriageway of only 4 m width. In 1900, it was widened
to 4.5 m by reducing the width of the parapet walls, and cantilevered foot-
ways of 1.24 m width were constructed on either side as shown in Fig. 7.25.
An aesthetically pleasing example of cantilever widening is shown in
Fig. 7.26. Here a multispan brick and stone arch bridge has been widened
on one side using cast iron corbels to support springing points for the new
structure. The other side has been left in its original condition. By raising
the height of the additional arches, the tunnel effect has been lessened. The
new brickwork is of a similar mellow appearance to the original and an
interesting reflective effect has been achieved. Surprisingly, the brick arch
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
ring of the addition is laid differently having three, separate rings of headers,
whereas the old arch has the same thickness, but with English bond where
headers and stretchers are laid so that it is a single structural component.
A less pleasing example of cantilever widening was carried out on Wye
Bridge in Kent. Here a seventeenth century five-span grade II listed stone
bridge was widened in the nineteenth century. Recesses for pedestrians
were removed and footpaths attached on either side by iron frames fixed
to the sides of the bridge. Writing in 1930, Jervoise described the widening
as having ‘completely spoilt the appearance of the bridge’. In addition the
bridge has had utility pipes attached to the masonry which are unsightly
and would be expensive to remove.
Over-decks
Widening can be achieved by constructing a new deck on top of the existing
arched structure. This was carried out in 1995 on Newton Cap Rail Viaduct,
Bishop Auckland, a grade II listed structure built in the 1850s, to achieve a
pleasing and practical conversion from rail to road, see Fig. 7.27. The exist-
ing width of 7.3 m was increased to 11.3 m between parapets and the new
deck was 450 mm thick and 257 m long, continuous over the full length of the
viaduct. In order to minimise the additional weight of concrete, transverse
reinforced concrete support walls at 5.2 m centres were constructed mono-
lithic with reinforced concrete saddles over the arches. The transverse walls
support the continuous deck on steel sliding bearings. The deck was fixed
near the middle of the viaduct and there were guided expansion joints at
other piers and abutments. The level of the deck was raised by 1 m, which
permitted more of the existing masonry to be retained and created 2.3 m
headroom within the interior for ease of access and inspection. Footways
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
were located on the cantilevered sides of the new deck. The retained arch
structure was repaired; defective bricks in the intrados of the barrels were
replaced, damaged sandstone was repaired with colour-matched mortar and
areas beneath the piers and abutment were probed and grouted.
A similar type of over-decking scheme was proposed for the Wye Bridge
in Kent, but eventually turned down partly because it was seen as being
too wide for the proportions of the old bridge. Cantilevered sides are not
considered an attractive option for widening smaller arch structures, as the
straight edge of the cantilever and the shadow effect detract from the orig-
inal disposition of the masonry. On longer and taller bridges, however, with
careful detailing and retention of the original parapet, cantilevering can
be successful.
Bray Viaduct, a structure supported on tall masonry piers, was widened
from a single-track rail to a road having a 7.3 m carriageway, in 1989. Con-
siderable care was taken to achieve a pleasing appearance having minimal
environmental impact. To this end a new concrete deck was constructed
having its edges raised to reduce transmitted traffic noise and conceal the
view of traffic from the valley below. The conversion involved raising the
height of the six existing piers and installing three others to replace an exist-
ing and inadequate tipped embankment. This new construction was faced
with matching local sandstone and gritstone. The increased height and
length of the viaduct enhanced the already dramatic effect on the local ter-
rain, see Fig. 7.28.
STRENGTHENING
Masonry arches are intrinsically strong and durable, but it is often difficult
to demonstrate their full strength analytically. Despite having been around
for thousands of years, there has been an inadequate understanding of their
full structural action. When assessing load carrying capacities, it has been
necessary to use approximate methods to obtain safe values for all types
and geometries of arch. As a result, many arch bridges have been unnecess-
arily strengthened or replaced. The real strengths were demonstrated viv-
idly in a series of tests to collapse carried out by the Transport Research
Laboratory between 1985 and 1989 (see Page, 1993). Live loading was
applied at quarter or third points to give the most damaging configuration.
Collapse loads for seven tests were between 108 and 560 tonne and an
eighth bridge which was in a very advanced state of deterioration and
closed to all traffic, was collapsed at 22.8 tonne. In the time since these
tests, more realistic methods of analysis have been developed and tested
against the TRL data so that it has become possible to identify under-
strength arches more accurately. To this end, the discrete element method
has been developed to provide a particularly powerful analysis of masonry
behaviour and ultimate strength.
STRENGTHENING 119
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Analysis using discrete elements has the added advantage that it can
identify less common modes of failure such as shear and is not confined to
the hinge mechanism.
STRENGTHENING 121
Saddle
The arch barrel can be thickened and strengthened by adding concrete to
the extrados. The concrete, which is usually reinforced, forms a saddle. The
construction process requires the fill to be excavated and the arch barrel to
be exposed and cleaned. It is important for the concrete to form a structural
connection with the masonry so that the full potential strength can be
developed. It has been estimated that, depending on the circumstances, a
33% increase in barrel thickness could double the load carrying capacity.
Circumstances that dictate the degree of strengthening include: strength of
the concrete, whether the concrete is reinforced, degree of composite action
and relative stiffness of the concrete and masonry.
Saddling has been a popular method as it is seen as being straightforward
and direct, and the opportunity can be taken to waterproof the arch. How-
ever, there can be difficulties if utilities are present, particularly when there
is little depth of fill over the crown of the arch. With the increasing densities
of traffic and expectation of the travelling public, road or lane closures for
the duration of saddling, have become less practical. Also, it is necessary
to take care to ensure that the spandrel walls are stable when the fill has
been removed and there is no risk of collapse.
122 MASONRY BRIDGES
Overslab
Construction of an overslab enables axle loading to be distributed more
evenly through the fill and into the arch barrel. It also provides an opport-
unity to waterproof the bridge and properly manage the run-off. In designing
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Overbuild
Overbuilding is a technique carried out mainly in the late 1800s and early
1900s, whereby a steel or composite superstructure was constructed on to
the masonry abutments in place of the arch. This could be designed to raise
the load-carrying capacity and increase clearance beneath the deck, as
shown in Fig. 7.29. Although an economic and rapid method of reconstruc-
below the crown of the arch, see Fig. 7.19. It was very creditable that Surrey
County Council chose to remove the beams and reconstruct the bridge in
its original form.
Thickened surfacing
Thickening the surfacing has been advocated as an economic method of
increasing load carrying capacity by distributing axle loading more evenly.
However, it is unlikely to be as effective as overslabbing of the same thick-
ness, as asphalt is less stiff than concrete and becomes more flexible in
warm weather.
It is necessary to pay due attention to the longitudinal surface profile to
even out the ‘hump’ of the arch, if one is present, and arrange for the added
thickness of surfacing to be tapered down to some distance from the bridge
to avoid a surface step. When vehicles travel over surface irregularities,
impact factors are generated which can result in amplified loading of the
arch. Surface thickening can accompany other strengthening methods, so
that the additive effects produce the required results. On its own, thickening
the surface is likely to be a less potent and less reliable method than most
others and the degree of strengthening is difficult to calculate with any pre-
cision. Moreover, as surfacing wears and cracking develops its structural
contribution is lessened.
Prefabricated liners
Arches can be strengthened by fitting prefabricated liners beneath the bar-
rel. Various materials have been used including corrugated steel, fabricated
sheet steel, glass reinforced cement and reinforced concrete. It is necessary
for the liner to follow the arch profile reasonable accurately so that the
resulting space between liner and arch can be filled with grout to achieve
a structural connection.
A prefabricated liner changes the appearance of the soffit and side elev-
ation of the arch. The liner can be sculptured to become an architectural
feature otherwise it is liable to be positively ugly. Liners of any type reduce
headroom beneath the arch.
When the three-span Spencer River Bridge, Northampton, was found to
be understrength and in need of widening, various schemes were studied.
It was decided that the best option was to line the arches with precast
segmental units supported on corbels, bolted to the piers and abutments.
Design was based on the safe assumption that the barrels had failed and
made no contribution to strength. The annulus between the brick arch and
liner was grouted with PFA cement grout. The abutments were underpinned
with mini-piles from road level down to stiff clay. Care was taken with the
appearance and the new elevation was faced with blue engineering bricks
124 MASONRY BRIDGES
to match the existing upstream elevation. The side faces of the liners were
in-stepped relative to the brick arch-rings to soften the effect of the con-
crete.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Supportive truss
A supportive truss is a variant on a prefabricated liner. Whereas liners have
a curved profile which follows that of the arch and minimises loss of head-
room, supportive trusses change the profile to ‘square off’ the curvature. It
follows that the headroom is significantly reduced and the method is only
suitable for tall arches where there is headroom to spare. Supportive trusses
can be constructed in steel or concrete, for example Fig. 7.30. They produce
a stark contrast in material and engineering style which is usually unattrac-
tive and unsuitable except in a last resort.
Sprayed liners
Masonry arches can be strengthened in situ by external reinforcement and
sprayed concrete, to form an in situ liner. This is distinct from the use of
sprayed concrete to repair defective masonry or brick. The concrete is pro-
jected at high velocity so that a high density and strength can be achieved.
It is reinforced by steel to provide the added strength. The spraying process
requires experience and skill to ensure concrete fills the crevices and holes
that are likely to be present in the masonry. There is also the ‘shadow effect’
to be avoided when spraying around steel reinforcement. The process can
apply concrete up to 300 mm thick. Care must be taken to ensure that there
is a good interfacial joint, otherwise the sprayed lining may become
detached from the masonry due to shrinkage or deterioration of the
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
masonry surface.
As mentioned earlier in the section on conservation, the appearance of
sprayed concrete can be rather poor and is unsuitable for heritage struc-
tures. Special attention is required for the edge detailing to avoid an excess-
ively unsightly appearance in side elevation. Sprayed liners reduce head-
room beneath the arch.
least intrusive ways to raise load carrying capacity. It has been used to
strengthen historic masonry arch bridges in Britain, Australia and the USA.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
SUBSTRUCTURES
Substructures and resistance to flooding could be regarded as the Achilles
heel of masonry arch bridges, as flood damage is by far the most common
cause of failure. In an appraisal of 143 failures of all types of bridges up to
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1976, it was found that sixty-six were due to scour and many of the bridges
were masonry arches. In the time since this appraisal, there have been more
failures caused by scour, for example the 127-year-old, five-span brick arch
railway bridge across the river at Inverness collapsed in a 1-in-100 year flood
in 1989. Here, the failure was attributed to scour beneath the piers due to
a record river flow of 800 m3/s.
The older masonry arch bridges, particularly those having comparatively
short spans, are not very efficient in a hydraulic sense because the channels
between abutments and piers are invariably a serious constraint to the flow
of water during floods. The constraints cause water levels to rise on the
upstream side, so that hydraulic forces are imposed on the structure. Also,
fast flowing water can scour the bed of the river and undermine the foun-
dations, for example a river bed could be scoured to a depth of 600 mm,
whereas foundations may be only 300 mm deep. There are various ways to
improve the hydraulic performance of bridges without significantly spoiling
their appearance.
Hydraulic efficiency
Hydraulic efficiency can be improved by the provision of entrainment or
guide walls to funnel the flow approaching and leaving the bridge and pro-
vide a streamline transition from the river bank to the bridge and vice versa.
Entrainment walls should preferably be constructed with large stones or
gabions. Concrete or sheet piling spoils the setting of the bridge and dam-
ages the habitat and wildlife. The shape of piers in plan can be made less
bluff by rounding corners, this has usually been done in the past by the
provision of cutwaters on the upstream side and sometimes on both sides.
A more recent scheme has been to construct suitably shaped guides, com-
posed of piles in a diamond shape (in plan) upstream of the bridge, in an
attempt to control scour. This has been done for several railway bridges on
a semi-experimental basis. The guides are treated as sacrificial because
scour is relocated away from the bridge piers.
A more traditional method of protecting the piers is by the provision of
starlings to a height just above low-water level.
Scour can be controlled by the provision of an invert (inverted arch) hav-
ing its concave face uppermost and located in the river bed between the
toes of abutments or piers. Early inverts were constructed of masonry,
whereas modern ones are concrete. Scour can occur beneath the invert on
the downstream side. This can be controlled by installation of trench sheet-
ing. Inverts can also be constructed as flat slabs, sometimes referred to as
paving. There are early examples having historic surfaces, such as cobbles
and stone pitching and these should be retained when possible. Nowadays
concrete is commonly used but tends to settle and crack with time. Heritage
authorities favour the use of gabions for both paving and retaining the river-
bank. In addition to protecting from scour, inverts act as struts that oppose
128 MASONRY BRIDGES
tion. This compensates for the reduced channel width, enabling water to
flow through the arches at a more uniform speed so that scour is minimised.
Some of the older multispan river bridges have so-called flood arches.
These are normally dry but provide extra hydraulic capacity when water
levels rise during floods. It is necessary to attend to these during mainte-
nance to prevent them becoming blocked by debris, landfill or new con-
struction.
Conservation
Where there is a need to repair or enhance foundations, underpinning can
be carried out by excavating material and replacing it with mass concrete,
or by insertion of minipiles. The method of underpinning and its design
is of course influenced by the nature of the ground and the strengthening
requirements. Minipiles are typically installed so that they run through the
pier or abutment, usually at an angle inclined to the vertical, and into the
ground beneath. They make a direct connection between the substructure
and suitable foundation ground beneath. Additional works to make a struc-
tural connection, such as installation of a pile cap, are not required.
Weak piers are sometimes strengthened by steel frames, a method that
is effective but changes the appearance of the bridge and is unattractive.
Undercut piers can be strengthened by reinforced concrete collars resting
on suitable foundations, as for Laigh Milton Viaduct, Ayrshire.
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE
Inspection
Management of masonry bridges is invariably hampered by a shortage of
information about the internal features and dimensions, and the mainte-
nance history. This shortfall can be a problem with all types of bridge, but
is more prevalent in masonry bridges because of their greater age and
chequered history. Factors that can be important, if not crucial, to the
assessed strength include:
쐌 the actual thickness of the arch barrel, as opposed to the apparent thick-
ness indicated on the end-face, which may be different
쐌 dimensions of backing above the springing, if present
쐌 dimensions of any retrospective strengthening that may have been car-
ried out such as a reinforced concrete saddle or overslab
쐌 details of the design of any additions that may have been made to the
original bridge. The most common addition is to widen the bridge, usu-
ally by building an adjacent structure having the same profile
쐌 dimensions of paving between abutments, if present, and
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE 129
Maintenance
Masonry structures are very durable but there are several types of defect
than can develop over the years and require maintenance:
spandrel above, see Fig. 7.12. Some maintenance authorities have con-
sidered it necessary to remake the transverse structural connection in
the arch using dowel bars and making good the mortar. However, cur-
rent thinking is that the cracking is a result of traffic loading causing
the arch structure to articulate separately from the spandrels and as
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
such it is harmless and best left alone unless there is progressive widen-
ing of the crack.
쐌 Longitudinal cracking between the new and old parts of a widened struc-
ture. This is usually best left alone unless there is good reason to impose
a structural connection.
쐌 Thermal cracking of masonry where the fill has been replaced by con-
crete. There have been occasions when this has occurred and it is
necessary to carry out a structural analysis of the situation before
designing an appropriate solution.
쐌 Leakage is self-evident and usually due to failure of the waterproofing.
Sometimes weep holes have been installed in the spandrels to permit
the water to escape. Usually, the waterproofing can be made good at
the appropriate time in the maintenance cycle. Unchecked leakage can
permit erosion of particles from the fill, the generation of voids and
weakening of the structure.
쐌 Ponding of water and consequential damage can be caused by accumu-
lated detritus. Gulleys, passageways, weep holes, gargoyles and drains
should be kept clear. Waterproofing of the decks should be maintained
in effective condition.
쐌 Leakage from water pipes buried in the arch has sometimes occurred
causing considerable damage, as mentioned earlier. Early action should
be taken if leakage becomes evident.
쐌 Cracking in the spandrels can, among other things, be due to unequal
settlement of foundations or the action of live loading. Masonry struc-
tures can cope with a degree of distortion caused by unequal settlement
and it will often be sufficient to repoint with lime mortar. If the move-
ment is still active, it will require investigation and action to stabilise
it. Cracking, due to the action of live loading, is more serious as it can
lead to the development of a collapse mechanism, albeit arch bridges
can continue to carry load when in an apparently very advanced stage
of failure, as evidenced by Prestwood Bridge.
쐌 As mentioned earlier in this chapter, serious damage is sometimes
caused, apparently unnoticed, by installation of utilities. This can
present some difficult problems as utilities can be very expensive to
move and it is usually necessary to work around them.
쐌 Deterioration of the jointing mortar requires attention and repointing
from time to time. It is important to use lime mortar, as cement mortar
is incompatible with old masonry and can cause damage. The pointing
must be carried out so that the mortar has the correct profile.
쐌 Deterioration of individual pieces of stonework or bricks can reach the
stage when they must be replaced on a like-for-like basis.
쐌 Vegetation should be removed and kept clear of the masonry.
BIBLIOGRAPHY 131
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Page, J. (1993) Masonry Arch Bridges, TRL State-of-the-Art Review, HMSO.
Jervoise, E. (1930) The Ancient Bridges of the South of England, The Architectural
Press.
Public Works, Roads and Transport Congress. (1933) British Bridges.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Highways Agency. (1996) The Appearance of Bridges and Other Highway Structures,
London: HMSO.
Ashurst, J. (1988) Plasters, Mortars and Renders, Practical Building Conservation Ser-
ies, Vol. 3. Gower Technical Press.
Waterway Environment Services. (1999) Design Manual Volume Two. Repair and Con-
servation. British Waterways.
Timber
ABBREVIATIONS
CCA Chromated Copper Arsenate, a commonly used preservative
EPA Environmental Protection Act (1990)
GLOSSARY
Anisotropy Different physical properties in different directions
Cleft (or hewn) Timber that has been split along the grain, i.e. not
sawn
Hygroscopic Tendency to absorb moisture
Splash zone Zone at ground level (approximately 200 mm)
liable to harsher wetting conditions
Tracheids Timber cells having a ‘straw-type’ structure
Boron compounds Environmentally friendly preservatives containing
boron salts
Sister member A new member fitted in parallel to strengthen an
existing member
BACKGROUND
The use of timber as a bridge building material has to a large extent been
superseded by steel and reinforced concrete. Worldwide, the stock of tim-
ber bridges has fallen significantly in recent years, for example, between
1980 and 1995 the number of bridges in Finland fell from 1200 to 700 and
there are similar reductions in other countries. Nevertheless, many bridges
still remain, both in and out of service, that are constructed either fully or
134 TIMBER
partly of timber. Timber remains well suited to country park bridges where
it fits in with the ambience, see for example Fig. 8.1. Increasing concern over
the sustainability issues raised by the use of steel and reinforced concrete
has been, at least partly, responsible for a revival of interest in the use of
timber for the construction of new bridges, albeit primarily for lightly loaded
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
on what would almost certainly have been stone or brick abutments and
piers. This bridge was recorded on canvas by Canaletto, shortly after con-
struction. The illustration in Fig. 8.5 is based on his painting. Many different
theories have been developed regarding the design of the bridge, but what
is clear is that a key element of the design is that any one of the wooden
members could be replaced without disturbing the others. Sadly this bridge
lasted no more than 30 years.
Brunel made extensive and successful use of timber in the construction
of railway viaducts but it became clear that rising labour costs, coupled
with an overall drop in the quality and availability of suitable timber made
their continued maintenance uneconomic. All of Brunel’s timber bridges
were replaced by 1934.
The Royal Albert Bridge at Saltash, also by Brunel, is an example of the
use of timber to aid articulation. The wrought iron structure was originally
supported on oak bearings. Over time, as a result of inadequate drainage,
the oak began to rot. As part of a recent maintenance programme, the
decision was taken to replace the bearings. After careful consideration of
the effects on the rest of the structure of possible replacement bearing sys-
tems, it was decided that the most suitable material was still timber and
the rotten bearings were replaced with new oak bearings, identical to the
originals that had lasted for some 130 years.
Those timber bridges built prior to 1960, which are still in existence, will
invariably be beam, arch, trestle, truss or a combination of these structural
forms. Timber has also been used for various components in other types
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Timber properties
Timber possesses lower strength in both tension and compression than
steel, and lower strength in compression than reinforced concrete
(reinforced concrete is not usually designed to act in pure tension). This
means that to support a given load a timber section has to be significantly
more substantial than a steel or reinforced concrete section. Timber also
has a much lower elastic modulus than steel or concrete (reinforced
concrete per se does not have a unique elastic modulus). This means that,
for example, a beam of a given section supporting a given load will deflect
much more if it is made of timber than if it is made of steel or concrete. As
a result of this combination of low strength and low stiffness, timber is sel-
dom used for modern structures required to carry heavy loads and/or where
deflection control is critical. On the other hand, timber has a lower density
than steel or concrete and on the basis of specific strength
(strength/density), it compares more favourably.
Timber has a lower coefficient of thermal expansion. This is an advantage
because timber decks can be designed as pin-jointed or as semi-stiff jointed
structures, where any rotation or movement at the supports can be accom-
modated by deflection of the members. In contrast, steel and concrete
bridges usually have to be designed with bearings and expansion joints to
cope with the movements caused by temperature changes.
Timber possesses a thermal conductivity in the region of one tenth that
of steel or concrete and is therefore less affected by temperature changes
in the first place.
Among the factors responsible for the reduced use of timber in bridge
building, is the availability of durable varieties. Originally the low demand
for timber meant that the existing sources (many of them ancient woodland)
could supply the required quantity and quality. With the industrial revol-
ution and the growth of global trading, the range of available types of timber
multiplied at the expense of large areas of forest. This level of exploitation
is now recognised as being unsustainable and the majority of structural
timber now comes from managed sources. However, a side-effect of the
development of modern tree farming is that trees are often felled when the
rapid growth period ends, before they have reached full maturity. This
means that large section timber has become less common. In the nineteenth
century, structural timber was commonly of pitch pine, Baltic pine or
Douglas fir. Oak was the most commonly used hardwood. Timber piles were
138 TIMBER
to obtain the required sections in Douglas fir, and consequently the more
expensive European oak was used as replacement.
One important consideration regarding choice of a particular timber is its
relative durability. It is a common misconception that hardwoods are more
durable than softwoods per se. This is not necessarily the case, there are
many hardwoods that are far less durable than some softwoods. Provided
the structural and aesthetic requirements are addressed, it can be more
economic to use preservative-treated softwood, in preference to durable
hardwoods, such as greenheart.
Trusses
Design of the first timber truss is generally attributed to Palladio in the
sixteenth century. Engineers developed different forms of timber truss in
the nineteenth and early twentieth centuries, as shown in Fig. 8.7. In 1820,
Ithiel Town developed the simple lattice truss, which was later used
extensively in American covered bridges. The well-known truss systems
developed separately by Howe and Pratt in the 1840s relied upon timber
diagonal bracing with vertical iron ties and iron diagonal ties with vertical
timber struts, respectively. The use of bolted iron rods enabled the pro-
vision of precompression to stiffen the joints between the main timber mem-
bers, thereby improving the truss’s performance.
The extensive use of timber trusses as beam elements in many bridges
Various designers sought to address these problems, the first being John
McDonald who introduced a number of design improvements:
140 TIMBER
쐌 the elimination of the use of a ‘double thickness top cord’ inner truss
쐌 splaying the ends of members to provide stability
쐌 the use of cast iron clamps (instead of drilled holes) to connect vertical
ties which enabled a better joint to be constructed
쐌 the use of cast iron end-plates on diagonal timbers which improved the
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
PERFORMANCE
Physical defects of timber
Common physical defects that can affect the performance of structural tim-
ber are illustrated in Fig. 8.8. These are:
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
In addition to the above, the material properties of timber which can affect
its performance, are volume changes due to moisture movement, its suscep-
tibility to degradation and the fact that timber is anisotropic. One form of
degradation that can affect exposed timbers is their susceptibility to deterio-
ration under the action of the ultraviolet content in sunlight. This only
affects the topmost surface, but can enable some forms of biological decay
to take hold, and possibly increases the propensity of the timber to absorb
surface moisture.
Moisture movement
Timber, when first cut, may contain in excess of 28% moisture by weight.
Timber is hygroscopic and any change in moisture content will result in
dimensional changes in the section, as well as affecting the strength and
stiffness of the member. Furthermore, these changes will be directional.
Prior to machining for structural use, timber should be conditioned to a
point where the moisture content is in equilibrium with its intended environ-
ment. Some traditional forms of construction depart from this rule to make
use of the shrinkage that accompanies drying. Within the wood, moisture
is retained in the tracheids (in the case of a softwood) and can travel along
these hollow cells faster than it can travel between them. Consequently,
because structural members are always designed with the grain running
along the member, changes in moisture content will have greater effect on
the cross-sectional dimensions of the member than on its length.
It is not surprising therefore, that construction using ‘green’ timber
(freshly cut) is liable to substantial distortion. Generally, the design should
accommodate the instability of the timber through articulation and jointing
have taken several years. Consequently, the bridge was constructed of green
oak, with a certain amount of distortion anticipated. In the event the distor-
tion duly took place.
Since fasteners and joints are most often fitted to the ends of members,
and since end grain is most affected by changes in moisture content, the
potential exists for the greatest moisture damage to affect the area subject
to the highest local stress. It is important therefore in timber design to con-
trol exposure to moisture.
Creep
When under load timber exhibits creep, which is defined as time-dependent
deflection. Creep is influenced by load and the moisture content of the tim-
ber. The nature of timber means that the moisture content is seldom uni-
form throughout an entire member. There will inevitably be a gradient of
moisture content, with the outside and end sections fluctuating to a greater
extent than those near the centre of the member. Creep is therefore difficult
to predict with accuracy and can easily be underestimated. The design
codes classify service conditions that depend upon the moisture content of
the timber. Timbers in external situations almost certainly come under the
more aggressive service classes, unless the structure is roofed and well-ven-
tilated.
Biological degradation
Biological degradation is an inevitable consequence of the organic nature
of timber. Both rotting and non-rotting fungi can affect timber (Table 8.1).
Although dry rot is a far more serious and rapidly spreading form of
decay, and can pass through masonry, the action to be taken for any timber
affected by either dry or wet rot is similar. The affected timber should be
cut out, the cause of the rot removed, surrounding areas treated and new
pre-treated timber, with a moisture content similar to that of the parent
section, substituted.
Wet rot (see Fig. 8.10) can occur when the in-service moisture content is
more than about 20%. The in-service moisture content can vary throughout
sections and structures, dependent upon the service environment. Wet rot
is by far the most likely form to be encountered in the timbers of a bridge.
the British and European codes, dependent upon the general service con-
ditions (e.g. proximity to water). This enables the designer to establish the
required design considerations for the various members that comprise the
structure. For example, with any timber under the lowest hazard class, pro-
vision should be made for attack from beetles, possibly also termites
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Anisotropy
Due to its cellular structure, timber has anisotropic properties and in this
respect is more akin to modern fibre composites than to steel or concrete.
This can result in large differences in the elastic modulus and strength of
the material when measured parallel and perpendicular to the grain. Per-
formance of the various jointing techniques is also affected, though not
necessarily in an identical fashion. It is therefore important that the direc-
tion of the grain is taken into account in the assessment and design of joints
and members. As already discussed, the effects of moisture movement are
also anisotropic.
Anisotropy is most evident in cleft timber, which can be much stronger
than sawn timber. This is because cleaving requires a straight grain struc-
ture, and freedom from knots. It is the freedom from such imperfections
which effectively raises the strength of the section. Cleaving was once fairly
common, but is rare now due to high labour costs and shortage of suitable
timber. It is worth noting that timber that cleaves easily will be difficult to
nail or screw, since the nail or screw is likely to act as a wedge, causing
the timber to split. The cleavage properties of timber are determined more
by grain interlocking than density. Occasionally, the cleaved timber will
have grain that is curved in the plane perpendicular to that in which it is
cleaved, thus effectively creating a precambered section.
TIMBER JOINTS
Steel straps
Steel straps (as shown in Fig. 8.12) have long been used with structural tim-
ber, and can be relied upon to blend with the renovated structure as they
weather. Steel plates attached to opposite faces of a timber can be stitch-
bolted together to produce a neat attachment. Stitch bolting entails the
application of compressive stress between two opposite recessed plates,
held by tensioned bolts (see Fig. 8.13). In the design of these mechanical
tensioned repairs, it is necessary to consider the bearing capacity of the
timber, which could easily be crushed by over zealous tightening of the
bolts. It is also worth noting that such joints can become loose due to moist-
ure movement. This arises when the member absorbs moisture, but is pre-
vented from expanding so that a compressive stress and permanent strain
is developed. This stress will then relax upon drying out and as there is no
restraint to prevent shrinkage strain, the member then becomes loose
between the compressive plates.
146 TIMBER
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Adhesive joints
Adhesives are a fairly recent development being generally more suited to
well-machined softwoods and their use is not always feasible in older, tra-
ditional timber structures. Adhesives should only be applied to sound sur-
faces having no loose material and being free from grease and moisture.
Typical joints where adhesives are used include scarves, fingers, dowels
TIMBER JOINTS 147
and splices. Unsurprisingly the greater the bond area, the stronger the joint.
For this reason the shallow scarf joint provides the highest strength,
although being shallow, it also requires the greatest length of sound timber
on which to bond. Scarf and finger joints are used in glulam construction
to provide theoretically unlimited, continuous lengths of member.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Traditional joints
Some of the older types of mechanical joint, such as the pegged mortise-
and-tenon, can provide an extremely rigid, attractive and durable joint. In
148 TIMBER
the pegs. If the timber has been used in its fresh-cut (green) state, the
residual stresses set up from drying out can result in longitudinal shrinkage,
so that the member tries to pull out from the mortise. The structural effect
can be to tighten a framework, although it can also generate unequal strains,
resulting in torsion and various undesirable forms of instability.
Another traditional form of joint is the mechanically fastened scarf joint
(as used on the Wickham Bishops Viaduct). The joint is held together by
compressive stress from bolts (see Fig. 8.14).
Metal fasteners
Due to the required level of craftsmanship and expertise (both design and
workmanship), the traditional methods of jointing are not always practical
for large volumes of work. Recourse is therefore necessary to contemporary
metal fasteners such as nails, screws and hangers, shear plates and toothed
plates. As with adhesive joints, care must be taken with regard to the in-
service moisture content, load duration, timber varieties and so on. Toothed
plate connectors are invariably of galvanised steel, and almost exclusively
used on softwoods, in timber-frame construction. There may be possible
applications in footbridges, but metal fasteners are unlikely to be permitted
for conservation work on historic bridges.
One timber-specific problem that can affect both mechanical and glued
joints occurs when two deep sections are joined at 90°. The surface of the
timbers at the joint is restrained from movement (i.e. expansion due to
moisture uptake). The anisotropic performance of the timbers would result
in greater strain transversely to the grain (compared with that in the longi-
tudinal direction). Where this strain is prevented by restraint from the joint,
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
large stresses are created in the timber as it tries to expand. It is this stress
that can result in the longitudinal splitting (with the grain) leading up to
the joint.
Methods of jointing are summarised in Table 8.2.
CONSERVATION
Replacement of members
The factors to be considered when assessing whether to replace a timber
member fall into three broad categories, as summarised in Table 8.3.
The replacement of members on a like-for-like basis is a preferred method
of conservation as the appearance of the structure is unchanged, and the
original design and type of material are retained. However, it is not always
feasible and compromises may have to be made.
It is necessary to assess the structure to determine the condition of the
members and extent of deterioration. There may be a small number of mem-
bers requiring replacement, or the deterioration may have reached the stage
Clamp and stitch bolt Weathering can lessen The joints can loosen
changes in appearance. due to moisture
The appearance is neat movement. Changes the
and complementary. appearance. Loss of
originality.
Task Considerations
Preservative treatment
The British and European codes classify over one hundred different timber
varieties into three durability ratings:
Painting
Painting has a dual role of giving an attractive appearance in keeping with
the intentions of the designer, and providing protection to the timber.
As with the application of preservatives, it is imperative to ensure that
any paint (or stain) that is to be applied is suitable for the variety of timber
and the local environment. The various types of paint that are available tend
generally to fall into two classes: solvent-based and water-based. Tech-
nology in this area has developed greatly in recent years and the paints and
stains of today can offer better performance than many older products. One
prime concern when painting or staining timber must always be to avoid
trapping moisture. The commercially available water-based paints and
stains tend to be breathable and so in this respect have an advantage over
some solvent-based products.
The replacement of the parapets on the Chinese Footbridge at Godmanch-
ester (Fig. 8.6) is an example, where the requirement was for white railings.
The traditional approach would have been to specify exterior gloss paint.
Products are now available that contain pigment and so are opaque like a
paint, yet are bound in a breathable, (sometimes) thinner matrix, and are
less susceptible to failure through cracking. One of these products was used
in this instance. The timbers, which were of iroko were first degreased with
cellulose thinners. One coat of a solvent-based primer was applied (to pre-
vent transport of staining leachate from the timber), followed by two coats
of aqueous based pigmented stain. Iroko is eminently suitable for exterior
joinery and would have been adequately durable without any treatment or
finishes, but the requirement was for white parapets to preserve the original
style and appearance. Wherever possible, stainless steel was used for the
connections, due to the use of oak for the other members. The reason for
this is that oak sap contains high levels of tannic acid which would attack
unprotected steel.
쐌 Joint repair using thixotropic epoxy resin and steel dowels or plates.
This takes no account of the hygroscopic behaviour of timber resulting
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
The work carried out on the historic covered bridges in the USA provides
a good example of a successful programme of conservation. The provision
of a roof over the structure arose from concern regarding durability. This
approach was extremely popular in North America in the nineteenth cen-
tury. Timothy Palmer’s 1806 ‘Permanent Bridge’ over the Schuylkill River,
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
USA was the pioneer of this design. There were almost 400 covered bridges
in the state of Kentucky in the mid-nineteenth century, but only thirteen
remain. In recognition of their historical importance, a 3-year, $1.5 m inspec-
tion and restoration project was carried out between 1996 and 1997. As with
any work on a structure of cultural or historic interest, it was important to
establish the original design criteria and full details of the maintenance his-
tory. Conservation of the covered bridges was no exception and was guided
by information obtained from exhaustive desk studies and inspections. In
addition to checking the roof and walls to ensure that the bridge was still
protected from the elements, the structural members and connections were
also inspected. Presence of timber decay was identified through visual
inspections and impact-echo testing (a dull thud indicating the possibility
of decay). The extent of decay was determined through drilling (see section
on inspection techniques: microdrilling). The connections were checked for
tightness, corrosion and mechanical wear. The original timbers used in
many of the bridges were ‘mature’ yellow poplar, which was no longer avail-
able in the required size and quality. In this instance, Douglas fir was used
as a replacement timber, as its properties are similar. For sections suscep-
tible to pooling of water, insect attack and decay, such as the deck, deck
joints and connections, American white oak was used due to its high resist-
ance to insect attack. One over-riding concern regarding the supply of tim-
ber to these contracts was the contractual requirement for timber with a
moisture content of 15% or less since the shrinkage resulting from drying
out (obviously more of an issue with covered bridges) can cause serious
structural problems within months of construction. A moisture content of
15% is low for any external timber exposed to weather and probably reflects
the shelter to the superstructure afforded by the roof.
‘Sister’ members
Various methods exist to connect and repair joints and members. Of those
applicable to in situ repair and strengthening, there is substantial variation
in the resulting appearance. The most visually damaging and least accept-
able should only be used for temporary or emergency repairs, and consider-
ation given to any potential long-term disfiguration that may result. Such
methods include the addition of a ‘sister member’, see Fig. 8.16, clamping,
exterior reinforcement, splicing and propping. ‘Sister member’ is a term
used for a member installed in parallel to a deteriorated member, so that
the load is either shared or transferred altogether to the new member.
‘Sister members’ are sometimes used as temporary measures to be re-
engineered later. To that extent they can be regarded as props. There could
also be occasions when the original members are of sufficient heritage
importance that they must be retained and replacement is not an option.
In that case installation of ‘sister members’ would be a conservation method
to be considered.
156 TIMBER
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Protective sleeves
Protective sleeves, or encasement, can be used to protect and strengthen
deteriorated members as, for example in the conservation of the Barmouth
Rail Viaduct. This can be accomplished with either metal or concrete
encasement of the member under threat, thereby protecting it from agents
of attack and if required, providing an increase in structural section. Clearly
this method of renovation must encase the entire affected area plus a safety
region, and as mentioned, is of limited application.
Post-tensioning
In the case of longitudinally laminated wooden decks, both deflection and
the passage of moisture can be reduced by the installation of post-ten-
sioning. The need to protect both the timber and the post-tensioning
material from moisture and corrosive agents should always be addressed.
Similarly, the requirement with Douglas fir and oak to use non-ferrous fas-
teners, because of the extreme corrosive effect of the high tannic acid levels
in these timbers, should also be addressed.
Post-tensioning can be used in its better known role to reduce tensile
stresses and strengthen the bridge. When applying the compressive stress,
care must be taken to ensure that the timber member is not overstressed
and damaged.
In general, post-tensioning changes the structural action of the bridge and
can affect its appearance. Such changes are not readily agreed by heritage
authorities. Methods of repair are summarised in Table 8.5.
CONSERVATION 157
be retained.
Examples of conservation
Wickham Bishops Rail Viaduct, Maldon, is a beam and trestle structure built
across the River Blackwater in 1848, see Fig. 8.17.
The railway was closed in 1966 and the viaduct left to decay under the
actions of weathering and vegetation. The worst deterioration was at water
level, where the timber piles lost a substantial amount of cross-section. The
required load carrying capacity was vastly reduced when the viaduct was no
longer required to carry railway vehicles, rendering half of the pile columns
redundant. In 1995, when the viaduct was repaired, the redundant members
were left alone and other pile columns were replaced like-for-like. Bitumen
paint was applied to protect the timber in the vicinity of the splash zone.
Barmouth Rail Viaduct, Wales, was constructed in 1866, see Fig. 8.18. The
structure was temporarily closed when it was found that the timber pile
columns had reduced cross-sections as a result of borer infestation. The
deterioration was at ground level where pools of trapped water encouraged
the infestation. In 1986, when the viaduct was repaired, the deteriorated
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
the mating surfaces and the fit would be less critical. The fendering was
independent of the main structure and composed of pitch pine piles. They
were braced diagonally and horizontally with pitch pine timbers. Fender
walings were 259 mm ⫻ 127 mm spaced at 1.22 m centre-to-centre vertically.
The timber deck was of 38 mm Douglas fir laminates preserved by immer-
sion in a creosote bath for 2 min. The road wearing surface was 19 mm
Finnish birch grade WBP plywood faced with calcined bauxite chippings set
in a matrix of epoxy resin. The footpath surface is untreated kéruing timbers
with opepe hardwood kerbing.
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE
Inspection
The nature of biological decay can make a meaningful inspection difficult.
For example, it will not always be easy to ascertain the extent of interior
damage to a member resulting from an infestation of boring insects. In these
circumstances, depending on the experience of the inspector, it may be pru-
dent to seek the advice of a wood technologist. Methods of inspection are
summarised in Table 8.6.
The numerous unknowns (resulting from natural variations in the
material) mean that more conventional non-destructive techniques, such as
impact-echo, endoscopy, thermography, X-rays, gamma rays and ultrasonics
are not always a viable means by which to investigate the internal condition
of timber. This was borne out by the case of Barmouth Rail Viaduct (see
Fig. 8.18). In this instance, ultrasonic tests failed to differentiate wormholes
from timber grain and could not be used underwater. X-rays suffered from
a lack of definition, and low frequency sonic tests failed to give the required
correlation. In the event, the only means of inspection found to be reliable
were intrusive. Sections were either cut open or small inspection holes
were drilled.
In contrast, to the negative experiences at Barmouth, several nondestruc-
tive methods were successfully used on the Angle Vale Bridge, in Australia.
Ultrasonic testing was used to determine the extent of timber deterioration,
radiographic testing of the bolts was used to establish corrosion levels and
static load testing was carried out to assess the stress–strain behaviour of
the structure.
A nondestructive method that can provide very accurate information on
the timber is the microprobe or digital microprobe. These are miniature
drills capable of detecting decay, cavities, tree growth and the history of
the timber. They rely on the accurate measurement of the torque required
to penetrate the timber, and were used to good effect in the remedial work
to Windsor Castle, following the fire in 1992. Although this equipment can
be purchased over the counter, the skill level required to use it correctly
requires experienced and knowledgeable operatives.
160 TIMBER
Old Shoreham Bridge, 1781 Beam and trestle originally built of oak.
West Sussex Rebuilt in 1916 of blue gum to a design
similar to the original, see Fig. 8.3.
mered into the timber. Surface readings reflect a more transient condition
than those at depth. The electrical resistance of the timber is dependent
on the moisture content, the level being given as a percentage. Due to the
hygroscopic nature of timber, coupled with the structural and biological
effects of changes in moisture content, an accurate measurement at critical
locations is imperative. Design codes assume a nominal moisture content,
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE 163
perature changes is fairly small and may be insignificant. Checks are always
necessary to ensure the continued provision of adequate ventilation to all
members and joints.
One reasonably well-accepted means of taking inspection further is
through load testing. Static loads are applied and the resultant deflections
measured. These are then compared with calculated values and the differ-
ences will then permit estimation of, for example, the effective cross-section.
Care must be exercised, however, when attempting to predict ultimate
strength from the result of a load test as the behaviour of timber as it
approaches its ultimate strength, particularly in compression, is highly non-
linear. When carrying out load tests, the ICE Guidelines on Supplementary
Load Testing of Bridges should be followed (see Chapter 12).
Maintenance
Water management, preservatives and structural repair have been dis-
cussed earlier in the chapter and are summarised in the following section.
Water management
Preservatives
Structural repair
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Fraser, D. Evolution of Timber Truss Road Bridges in New South Wales, Australia. Pro-
ceedings International Conference on Historic Bridges to celebrate the 150th Anni-
versary of Wheeling Suspension Bridge, 21–23 October 1999, West Virginia Univer-
sity Press.
Chapter 9
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
GLOSSARY
Iron ore A naturally occurring mineral containing iron oxide
mixed with sand, earth, clay and stones which
contain silica and other compounds.
Smelting The operation which changes iron ore into pig
iron by the use of heat and chemical energy.
Pig iron Crude iron as produced from a blast furnace and
containing carbon, silicon and other impurities.
Blast furnace A furnace used for smelting iron ore by means of
heating a mixture of iron ore and coke or coal
(formerly charcoal). A blast of air is driven into
the furnace to enable the fuel to burn and produce
a high temperature.
Cast iron An alloy of iron, carbon and silicon produced by
re-melting pig iron. The molten metal is poured
into moulds to form castings of a particular shape.
SG iron Spheroidal graphite cast iron (also called ductile
iron). A cast iron developed since 1948 with
improved properties which can compete with steel
castings and forgings. Rounded graphite nodules
are formed when the metal solidifies.
Wrought iron Almost pure iron made by reheating and
hammering pig iron to remove impurities.
Puddling The process of making wrought iron carried out in
a reverberatory furnace in which pig iron is melted
and refined by the addition of iron oxide and other
substances.
166 IRON AND STEEL BRIDGES
Reverberatory furnace A shallow furnace used to melt pig iron, with the
iron being kept from direct contact with the fuel.
Used in the puddling process (for wrought iron)
and open hearth process (for steel).
Steel An alloy of iron and carbon produced from
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
BACKGROUND
Iron has been used in bridge construction since the turn of the eighteenth
century and there are many fine examples in everyday use. When dealing
with the conservation of these bridges, it is important to have knowledge
of iron in its various forms, its manufacture and properties.
Cast iron
Originally, iron was extracted from ore in charcoal furnaces in a pasty con-
dition in which it could be shaped and purified by hammering. With the
invention of the blast furnace circa 1500 AD, it became possible to achieve
the temperature of 1,250°C at which pig iron becomes truly molten and can
be cast. It was not until Abraham Darby perfected coke smelting of local
iron ore in Coalbrookdale in 1709 that it became practicable to produce
BACKGROUND 167
reliable cast iron in large quantities. Others were slow to follow this example
and, taking advantage of the local expertise and availability of cast iron,
thirteen businessmen in the area proposed to construct a bridge over the
River Severn to replace the overworked ferry. In 1776 a Bill was laid before
Parliament for the construction of a bridge in cast iron. Thus was born the
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
localities to achieve what was considered to be the optimum mix for a parti-
cular use. Virtually all the cast iron used for structural applications was
grey cast iron because it was made from the best quality pig iron and was
therefore most reliable.
Cast iron was seen by most engineers as the great new wonder material
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
likely to supersede timber for all purposes because of its greater security
in supporting heavy loads and in resisting fire and rot. Fire was a particular
hazard at this time in the textile mills and Charles Bage designed a flax
mill on the outskirts of Shrewsbury which was the world’s first multistorey
building with an internal cast iron frame (completed in 1797). The floor con-
struction comprised cast iron beams with brick jack arches, which was to
be later adopted for many short span railway bridges. Bage was a Shrews-
bury wine merchant, amateur engineer and friend of Thomas Telford and
his formulae were the first recorded design methods for cast iron beams
and columns circa 1800.
A significant development in the late 1700s was James Watt’s invention
of the steam engine and the use of steam to power a strong blast of cold
air into the blast furnaces. By the 1830s, a hot air blast enabled coal to be
charged as fuel direct into the furnaces without prior conversion to coke
and more iron could be extracted from old blast furnace slag. However, both
practices introduced impurities and the quality of the cast iron was inferior.
By making improvements to the manufacturing process over the next 40
years, the difference in quality between cast iron made by either a cold
blast or hot blast became insignificant.
Cast iron contains typically 2 to 5% carbon, absorbed from the coke dur-
ing smelting which makes it hard, brittle and very resistant to corrosion.
Other impurities such as silicon, manganese, sulphur, phosphorus, chro-
mium and copper also influence the characteristics of the material. The for-
mation of grey iron is promoted by the presence of silicon and phosphorus
and by a relatively slow cooling from the molten state. This allows some of
the carbon to solidify and form graphite flakes surrounded by what approxi-
mates to steel (see Angus, 1976; Doran, 1992).
The stress–strain curve for a grey cast iron varies considerably according
to the quantity and coarseness of the graphite flakes. The material under
tensile stress has been likened to a slotted steel plate. The low elastic limit
coincides with first localised yielding at the ends of the slots or internal
notches. The graphite flakes act as planes of weakness that account for the
relatively low tensile strength. Behaviour in compression is nearly elastic,
with the graphite able to transfer compressive stress. Tensile and flexural
strengths also vary with cross-section shape and size.
Thomas Tredgold published his work on the design of cast iron beams,
columns and tie rods in 1822 based on his experiments. Unfortunately, he
came to the conclusion that cast iron should be designed with the same
maximum stress in tension and compression and the maximum tensile
stress was approximately three times too high. Tredgold therefore advo-
cated cast iron I-beams with equal top and bottom flanges and such beams
were used in bridges up to the 1840s. Fortunately, in many cases, the beams
were proof-loaded to stress levels sometimes very near their ultimate
strength, but this did not matter provided that they passed the test and
the subsequent loading was less onerous. The man who partly corrected
BACKGROUND 169
proportion was nearer to 3:1 or 4:1. Hodkingon’s beams were widely used
from the 1830s onwards and his simple beam design formula was extensively
used throughout the nineteenth century, however, it did overestimate the
strength of larger beams.
During the years from about 1830 to 1850, many combinations of cast iron
and wrought iron were tried out to overcome the shortcomings of cast iron.
The use of cast iron beams declined during the period 1850 to 1890 due to
the adverse publicity following the collapse of the Dee Railway Bridge in
1847 and the advances made in the use of wrought iron. Cast iron columns
continued to be made for limited use up to the early 1930s.
Wrought iron
By about 1750, Abraham Darby II was making small quantities of wrought
iron from coke smelted pig iron, which could be used in forges. The process
of reheating and hammering the pig iron was slow and costly and took
approximately 12 h to produce one ton of wrought iron. Henry Cort revol-
utionised this process by his invention of the puddling furnace, patented in
1783; this made it possible to produce fifteen tons of wrought iron in 12 h.
The puddling process resulted in a semi-solid 50 kg ball of mixed iron and
slag, which was hammered and rolled into a bar, typically 25 mm square.
This bar was classified as ‘puddled bar’ and was used as a starting point to
manufacture higher quality wrought iron. ‘Merchant bar’ was produced by
cutting puddled bar material into suitable lengths and piling the cut bars
into orthogonal layers to produce a 0.5 m cube of piled iron bars bound
together with wire or thin iron bar. This piled cube of iron was then
reheated to 1,300°C and hammered and then rolled into bar. This process
of piling, reheating, rehammering and rerolling was repeated to produce
‘best bar’, often used for engineering applications. Repeating the process
again produced ‘best best bar’ typically used for chains, anchors and rivets.
However, the ‘best iron’ from one district was equal to perhaps the ‘best
best iron’ from another, so the above terms had a rather uncertain meaning
except for the brands from reputable manufacturers, such as Best Stafford-
shire.
The strength and ductility of the wrought iron is improved each time the
piling, reheating, rehammering and rerolling process is repeated. The slag
stringers are broken up to produce a finer dispersion with the slag fibres
principally aligned in the direction of final rolling. In good quality Victorian
wrought iron, all evidence of the orthogonal orientation of the slag stringers
contained in the differently orientated bars in the pile is totally eliminated
during reheating, rehammering and final rolling of the bar to the next qual-
ity. However, some banding of the matrix structure may still be evident. The
tensile strength of wrought iron can also vary significantly depending on
where and when it was made, however reasonable confidence can be placed
on the results of limited tensile strength testing if the elongation at fracture
170 IRON AND STEEL BRIDGES
is more than 10%. Wrought iron is almost pure iron, malleable and ductile
but less resistant than cast iron to corrosion.
Cort’s further invention of grooved rollers, patented in 1784, paved the
way for rolled structural sections such as flats, angles and tees (which were
rare before 1820). Prior to this date, structural sections were generally hand
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
from 1845 to 1855 and, by circa 1880, a large variety of rolled I-beams ranging
in depth from 75 mm to 350 mm were available from manufacturers both
in Britain and elsewhere. At this time, wrought iron beams encased in con-
crete were used for short span bridges. The use of wrought iron for major
bridges declined rapidly in the period from 1876 to 1884. The Ashtabula
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Howe truss bridge (USA) collapsed in 1876 due to the derailment of a train
in a snow storm and 2 years later the Tay lattice-girder bridge collapsed in
a force 11 storm. The Tay bridge collapsed due to poor quality castings,
unsuitable pinned and wedged joints and lack of understanding of wind load-
ing on the high girders, leading to inadequate design strength. The last
major bridge to be constructed of wrought iron was the Garabit lattice-truss
and arch viaduct (France), designed by Gustav Eiffel and completed in 1884.
Very little wrought iron was used after 1890, although there is evidence of
some use of wrought iron sections as late as 1910.
Wrought iron continues to be manufactured in small but commercial
quantities at a historic plant re-erected in Ironbridge Museum, Shropshire.
Steel
Structural steel sections were available in very limited sizes from 1850
onwards. The process of steel making was speeded up considerably by
Henry Bessemer’s converter (patented in 1856 and 1860) and Charles and
Frederick Siemens’ open hearth process (patented in 1861). However, the
quantity of steel produced from the early furnaces was limited by the fact
that the furnaces were lined with silica bricks (known as the ‘acid’ process)
and only low phosphoric iron could be used successfully. Most of the native
ores in Britain were phosphoric and therefore low phosphoric iron ore had
to be imported from Spain and Sweden. In 1878, Sidney Thomas and Percy
Gilcrest invented the ‘basic’ process, using bricks containing magnesia or
dolomite and, by adding lime to the molten mix, they were able to remove
phosphorus. The rapid exploitation of this process benefited USA and Ger-
many more than Britain, each of which had huge resources of phosphoric
iron ores and, by 1880, the world price for steel had dropped by 75% and
steel suddenly became competitive with wrought iron. By 1887, Dorman
Long and Company had produced a range of ninety-nine beam sizes, as well
as a vast range of channel and angle shapes. By 1890 nearly all beams and
other structural shapes were manufactured in steel. Developments in the
manufacture and in the control of quality and strength of steel are reflected
in British Standards from 1903.
The first major bridges to use steel as the principal structural material
were the St. Louis and Brooklyn bridges in the USA. Steel was used for the
main arch ribs on the St. Louis Bridge which was completed in 1874. The
Brooklyn Bridge was under construction at the same time and steel was
used for the cable stays and bridge deck trusses. The Firth of Forth Rail
Bridge in Scotland was completed in 1890 and it represented the first large-
scale use of open hearth steel in bridge construction (58,000 tons), see
Fig. 9.3. It was then the largest spanning bridge in the world, being 30 m
longer than the Brooklyn Bridge and it established the cantilever truss
bridge as a serious alternative to the suspension bridge (see Chapter 10).
Steel derives its mechanical properties from a combination of chemical
172 IRON AND STEEL BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
the period 1900 to 1950: Hell Gate arch bridge (USA, 1916), Quebec cantil-
ever truss bridge (Canada, 1917), Sydney Harbour arch bridge (Australia,
1932), Elbe plate girder bridge (Germany, 1936), Golden Gate suspension
bridge (USA, 1937).
The historical background to metal bridges and the significance of the
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
COMPONENTS
Cast iron beams
Cast iron beams were purpose made for a particular application, usually
with asymmetric flanges to take account of the low tensile strength, see
Fig. 9.5. Other typical features were integral stiffeners, hog-backed top
flanges and tapered flanges when viewed in plan. Bolt holes were formed in
the castings where required and castings became more complex, limited by
physical size. Cast iron beams were commonly used in composite bridge
decks in conjunction with brick jack arches. Alternatively cast iron deck
plates were used to span between the top flanges of the beams. These plates
usually had upstand or downstand ribs or a curved profile.
Steel beams
Prior to the issue of British Standard 4 (BS4) in 1903, the shapes and sizes
of beams were settled by individual manufacturers. BS4 listed thirty British
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1769 WATTS FIRST STEAM ENGINE PATENT 1843 BRUNELS SS GREAT BRITAIN LAUNCHED
17561763 SEVEN YEARS WAR 1787 WILKINSONS IRON SHIP LAUNCHED 1829 STEVENSONS ROCKET REACHED 30mph 1885 INVENTION OF MOTOR 1910 ROADS BOARD
BETWEEN BRITAIN AND FRANCE CAR BY DAIMLER BENZ SET UP IN BRITAIN
1750 1760 1770 1780 1790 1800 1810 1820 1830 1840 1850 1860 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1920 1930 1940
1847
1797 Dee Railway
Bages Mill Bridge
completed Collapse
CAST IRON 1781 1815
Iron Bridge, 1796 1841
Waterloo 1830
Coalbrookdale Sunderland Bridge (UK) Hodgkinsons beam Whipples
1709 (UK) Bridge (UK) bowstring
completed strength formula
Coke completed completed published truss patent
smelting of
iron by
Abraham
Darby
WROUGHT IRON
OUTER CORRESPONDING
GIRDERS INNER GIRDERS
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Standard Beam sizes (Ref Nos BSB 1 to 30). BS4 was reissued in 1921 with
new beam reference numbers NBSB 1 to 18 and British Standard Heavy
Beams and Pillars (Ref Nos NBSHB 1 to 11). BS4 was reissued in 1932 listing
forty British Standard Beam Sizes (Ref Nos BSB 101 to 140). Continental
beams were also exported to Britain in the period 1900–1930. Universal
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Steel columns
Standard stanchion sizes were first introduced by BS4 in the 1932 version
and the stanchions comprised single or double beams with additional flange
plates. Universal columns were introduced in 1959 (Bates, 1990).
Hybrid beams
It was not uncommon in the nineteenth century for beams to be constructed
of a hybrid of either cast iron and wrought iron or steel and wrought iron.
Possible examples are as follows:
쐌 wrought iron bars cast into the bottom flange of a cast iron beam
쐌 cast iron top flange/wrought iron bottom flange
쐌 cast iron web/wrought iron flanges
쐌 cast iron decorative features/wrought iron structural elements
쐌 cast iron beams/wrought iron ties under bottom flange
쐌 wrought iron beams with additional steel flange plates
Once painted, these combinations may look monolithic, however the impli-
cations can be significant as discussed under ‘Management Practice’.
Arches
The earliest metal arch bridges were made from cast iron arched ribs, cast
in sections and connected to form a complete member. The connections
reflected carpentry practice and were either mortise and tenon, dovetail or
bolted joints. It is a common occurrence for structures exploiting new
materials for the first time to use the construction techniques of the pre-
COMPONENTS 177
vious technology. For shorter spans, the arched ribs had solid webs and
the section height decreased towards midspan. For longer spans open span-
drels, typically with circular features, were used between the bottom arched
rib and deck level. To make the arched ribs stronger, open lattice construc-
tion was used either in the form of a lattice girder or lattice box. Also, a
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
combination of cast iron and wrought iron was used for compression and
tension members, respectively. Both materials were used to good effect in
tied arch bowstring bridges. Typical examples of metal arches are shown
in Fig. 9.6.
One of the earliest examples of a steel arch is the curiously named Iron
Bridge, Rothbury, built between 1870 and 1875. When the Tyne Bridge,
Newcastle, was constructed in 1928, this two-pin steel arch was the longest
of its type in Britain, with a span of 162 m. This record is currently held by
the Runcorn–Widnes Road Bridge, which was opened in 1961, with a span
of 330 m.
쐌 two ring jack arches with a circular arc profile, springing from the lower
flanges of the beams
쐌 structural backing (e.g. concrete, gypsum lime or mortared masonry) to
at least the extrados of the arch and more likely to the top of the beams
쐌 a minimum tie area of approximately 260 mm2/m length of beam in the
outer bay of transverse spanning jack arches, at springing level.
The vast majority of bridge decks with wrought iron/steel beams and
brick jack arches have the following design features:
쐌 two ring jack arches with a circular arc profile, generally springing from
PERFORMANCE 179
the lower flanges of the beams and sometimes springing from part way
up the beams, typically supported on angles riveted to the webs
쐌 some structural backing
쐌 a minimum tie area as for cast iron beam construction
쐌 a maximum aspect ratio for a jack arch of 10 (beam spacing/rise of
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
the arch).
In some cases, mass concrete has been used for the jack arches, with or
without permanent metal plate formwork.
Longitudinal spanning jack arches are often found in conjunction with
through deck construction (see below).
Through decks
This form of construction is common for bridges under and over railways
where shallow construction depth is required below the running surface.
The longitudinal edge girders are typically made from wrought iron or steel
with cross girders or trough floors spanning between the edge girders, for-
ming a half-through deck. For longer spans the edge girders are usually
replaced by trusses or box girders. For spans in excess of 50 m, overhead
cross-bracing is usually provided between the top of the edge members,
forming a through deck.
PERFORMANCE
Cast iron
One of the greatest virtues of cast iron is its high resistance to corrosion
and testament to this is the number of cast iron bridges still giving good
service today. The Iron Bridge was closed to vehicular traffic in 1931 due
to limitations of strength. However, the Coalport Bridge built nearby in 1799,
still carries traffic. The style and decoration of many cast iron bridges also
makes them desirable to keep.
As cast iron is brittle, it is essential to consider carefully the implications
of any defect in the cast iron that has arisen either during the casting and
construction or as a result of subsequent deterioration and modification.
These defects can manifest themselves as notches, pitting, holes, voids and
cracks. Surface pitting and holes below the surface at the top of the mould
are caused in inadequate ventilation of mould gases. Voids or open texture
at the web/flange and web/stiffener junctions are caused by the slower coo-
ling of the middle of the section compared to the surface of the mould.
180 IRON AND STEEL BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Such defects may act as local stress raisers and could cause cracking in the
tension zone.
Cast iron is also vulnerable to cracking caused by impact and fatigue load-
ing, see Fig. 9.7. This was recognised in the Iron Commissioners’ report
dated 1849 which recommended that a factor of safety of 6 should be
applied to the live load for railway bridge design after the collapse of the
Dee Railway Bridge in 1847 (Fig. 9.8). Longitudinal fractures to beam flanges
can also occur if work to services buried in the bridge deck is not carried
out by appropriate methods. Impact resistance is poor and reduces gradu-
ally with falling temperature and with increasing phosphorus content. How-
ever, cast iron has a low sensitivity to fatigue if permissible stresses are
kept within reasonable limits and it also has considerable damping qualities.
For cast iron beams used in masonry jack arch decks, it is particularly
important that adequate horizontal restraint is provided to the edge beam
to prevent lateral bending and/or twist in the beam. Jack arch construction
is discussed in more detail below.
Wrought iron
Wrought iron is less resistant than cast iron to corrosion but has greater
ductility and resistance to fatigue compared to steel. Deterioration usually
results from water penetration through the bridge deck and in the steam
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
blast zone on the soffits of railway overbridges. The following areas are
particularly vulnerable to corrosion:
Steel
All metal bridges require an effective paint system to prevent general cor-
rosion. However, this has a greater significance for steel bridges compared
to cast iron and wrought iron. The vast majority of problems with steel
bridges result from a breakdown of the paint system and the onset of cor-
rosion due to lack of regular maintenance and the vulnerable areas are simi-
lar to those listed for wrought iron. Steel corrodes more readily than either
cast or wrought iron. Exposed steel in a rural inland environment usually
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
corrodes at a rate of less than 0.05 mm loss of parent metal per annum and,
in an industrial environment, the corrosion rate is usually 0.05–0.10 mm per
annum. It should be noted that heavy accumulations of rust do not necessar-
ily indicate significant loss of section as general rust occupies up to ten
times the volume of the original material.
Early steel members were jointed using rivets and by circa 1900, struc-
tural steelwork began to be welded by the oxyacetylene process. The first
welded steel bridge was built in Britain in 1931. Welded fabrications dated
later than 1930–1935 are almost certainly to be electric arc welded. Site
fabrications were generally bolted to overcome the difficulties in quality
control and inspection of welded connections.
Brittle fracture is feared by engineers as it can occur suddenly and with-
out warning, for example Hasselt Bridge, a welded steel structure in Belgium,
collapsed overnight without any traffic loading. It is alternatively named
cleavage fracture as the actual fracture surface, when new, has a character-
istic crystalline appearance like sugar. Brittle fractures are normal to the
direction of stress and exhibit negligible deformation, and fracture is
initiated at a defect such as a mechanical notch, casting defect, weld defect
or corrosion pit, see Fig. 9.10. Steel exhibits a brittle–ductile transition tem-
perature, where fractures at temperatures below the transition are brittle.
Early steels tended to have high transitions but successive improvements
in metallurgy have lowered the value. Factors that affect the transition
include notch acuity of the defect and rate of loading. Transition tempera-
tures were formerly measured by laboratory tests such as Charpy impact
and Tipper notch tension, named after their inventors. Nowadays the more
fundamental fracture toughness tests are employed.
Fatigue cracking, like brittle fracture, is initiated at defects. Cracks propa-
gate progressively, depending on the frequency of loading, so that overall
rates can be rather low, for example cracks in the welds of steel bridges
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
where the curves have been generated from relevant data and analysed as
mean minus two standard deviations. Design S–N curves are provided for
different types of connection in Standards such as BS5400, Steel Concrete
and Composite Bridges.
depend on the transverse vertical bending stiffness of the edge girders and
the rotational stiffness provided by the connection between the edge girder
and the deck. This effectiveness can be impaired by corrosion to stiffeners
and connections.
Increases in live loading over time can produce imperfections such as
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
CONSERVATION
Methods of conservation are discussed below and summarised in Table 9.1.
noted that the welding of cast iron requires special attention to the selection
of electrodes and the preheating and post-heating of the parent metal and
therefore it is not easily controllable under site conditions. Although weld-
ing of cast iron is rarely used in structural situations, strong reliable repairs
were achieved in the spandrel rings on the iron bridge, Stratfield Saye,
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Hampshire, built in 1802. Here the largest member was just over 50 mm
square and the bridge which is located in a landscaped park, was restored
to its original 2 tonne capacity. Braising of cast iron is another option for
non-structural members.
Welding of wrought iron is possible although, as with cast iron, it should
be approached with caution and only after obtaining specialist advice. It is
important to appreciate that the laminar structure of wrought iron makes
it susceptible to laminar tearing adjacent to a new weld.
The technique of welding steel is well known and expertise is widely avail-
able. Steel can be welded to wrought iron, as shown in Fig. 9.12. However,
in this repair, migration of inclusions occurred from the wrought iron to
the steel.
An alternative technique for repairing cracked cast iron and wrought
iron/steel castings is cold stitching. Proprietary systems such as the Metal-
ock process can be virtually invisible, it can restore a large proportion of
the original strength and control of thermal stresses and distortion is not
applicable. The Metalock process consists of fitting special nickel alloy keys
into drilled apertures across the fracture, see Fig. 9.13. The high strength
and highly ductile keys are peened into a metal-to-metal condition and
become almost integral with the parent metal. Between the keys, overlap-
ping studs are installed along the fracture line. Final peening and hand-dress-
ing of the surface completes the repair, see Fig. 9.14.
Corrosion
In conjunction with the conservation of any corroded metal members and
components, it is important to rectify the cause of the corrosion to prevent
further deterioration. Significant loss of section to cast iron is rare due to
its high resistance to corrosion. The most common approach to reinstating
the loss of section on wrought iron and steel members is to bolt new steel
plates or sections to the affected member, which unfortunately often leads
to an unsightly repair. A preferred approach is to cut out the defective area
and weld or rivet a new section in place, see Fig. 9.15, thus maintaining the
original thickness of the section.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Deformation
A new heat treatment technique developed in the USA has been evaluated
recently by the Highways Agency in trials to straighten a damaged steel
bridge beam spanning the M5 motorway in Somerset. The bridge was struck
by a tipper truck which caused the outer 840 mm ⫻ 290 mm universal beam
to displace by 400 mm over a 2.5 m length. To repair the beam, oxyacetylene
torches were used to heat the lower flange to between 500°C and 600°C in
a V-shaped pattern. Horizontal jacks were used to restrain expansion away
from the original line so that as the beam cooled, internal stresses
developed which gradually straightened the beam. The trials were success-
ful and the technique has been used on a second bridge as a cost-effective
alternative to replacing the damaged section of beam. Research in the USA
is said to have shown that, providing local steel temperatures do not exceed
750°C, the strength of the straightened beam is virtually identical to its orig-
inal value.
190 IRON AND STEEL BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
STRENGTHENING
Various methods of strengthening old bridge superstructures have been
developed as described in the following sections and summarised in
Table 9.2.
Main beams
One solution to under-strength main beams is to insert additional main
members in between existing members and the new members may be
designed to carry part or all of the live loading. Ideally, the additional mem-
bers, should be visually similar to the original members but this is not
always possible. In certain circumstances, it may be acceptable to construct
additional beams in reinforced concrete or prestressed concrete, with a sof-
fit profile similar to the existing members. This approach has been used
for the strengthening of cast iron arched rib decks, especially over rivers,
examples of which are the Trent Bridge, Nottingham, and Town Bridge, Thet-
ford. Alternatively, universal beams have been inserted between the cast
iron arched ribs on St. Saviour’s Bridge, Ottery St Mary, which is a sched-
STRENGTHENING 191
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
uled ancient monument, and arched steel beams have been inserted
between the cast iron ribs on Brandy Wharf Bridge, Lincolnshire. In the
latter case, the original cast iron arch carries no live load.
A similar approach was used for the strengthening of the grade II listed
Farringdon Street Bridge in London, constructed in 1867, where a structural
steelwork grillage with a concrete deck was designed to fit in between the
cast iron main beams. The new steelwork and deck was supported on
reinforced concrete extensions to the existing granite columns and was
designed to act independently of the cast iron beams, which effectively
became non-load-bearing decorative features, see Fig. 9.19. The pier exten-
sions were cast to the same profile as the original pier top castings and a
bitumen bonded cork joint was formed between the concrete and the cast
iron beams. The original cast iron bracing was then refitted to the pier exten-
sions. This strengthening solution obscured little of the cast iron members
and also permitted phased traffic management on the road above.
The original main girders/beams can be replaced with similar steel mem-
bers of a higher capacity and this method was used for the strengthening
of the grade II listed Adelaide Bridge in Royal Leamington Spa, constructed
in 1891. Two of the original steel inner arched lattice girders were moved
192 IRON AND STEEL BRIDGES
to the edge of the deck to maintain the visual appearance of the bridge and
five new inner girders were installed. A pinned connection between the edge
girder and adjacent inner girder was made to prevent load transfer to the
edge girder and loading on the footway above the edge girder was carried
by new transverse box sections cantilevered from the top of the inner gir-
ders. For the strengthening of Queen’s Avenue Bridge over the Basingstoke
Canal, built in 1899, the seven wrought iron plate girders were in poor con-
dition and were replaced by twelve rolled steel beams. In order to create
the original plated appearance of the main beams, 6,000 imitation rivet
heads were welded to the new beams. In this case, it is arguable whether
or not the use of false rivets is good practice from a conservation viewpoint.
However, it is commendable that a significant effort has been made to make
the new beams visually similar to the original beams.
The assessment of Lambeth Bridge, London, in 1995 revealed that the
inner steel arched girders were deficient at midspan due to high horizontal
shear stresses at the top and bottom of the web. The solution adopted was
to bolt 20 mm thick steel cover plates to the web plates and flange angles,
utilising the existing rivet holes, see Fig. 9.20. A precise installation sequence
was devised which allowed rivets to be removed while keeping the bridge
massive plating exercise was carried out to strengthen the main span lattice
girders without changing the visual appearance of the girders. Unfortu-
nately, a new deck and overhead bracing were required on the live half of
the main span in conjunction with new approach spans to replace the orig-
inal plate girder decks, to accommodate modern loading and increased train
speed. However, as the clearance over the canal is 23 m, the change in
construction is not obvious to the casual observer.
For other through girder decks, additional stiffeners can be fixed to edge
beams and the connection with transverse members can be improved by
increasing the rigidity of the connection, using additional plate and/or shear
connectors fixed to the edge beam and cast into a reinforced concrete slab.
With all such work, careful consideration needs to be given to maintaining
the visual appearance of the bridge.
The solution adopted to strengthen the final compression member local
to the pinned base on Warburton Bridge over the Manchester Ship Canal
was to encase the member in concrete, see Fig. 9.21. The cantilever design
was unique at the time of construction, circa 1890s, and the same design
was used 25 years later for the Quebec Bridge over the St. Lawrence River
which collapsed during construction due to a buckling failure of the final
compression member. Careful detailing is required with concrete
encasement to prevent water traps between the concrete and metalwork. A
high standard of workmanship has been achieved on Warburton Bridge and
the scale of the repair is small in relation to the overall structure, both
factors contributing to a minimal change in appearance of the structure.
More extensive concrete encasement of the three inner arched ribs was
undertaken on Waterloo Bridge, Betwys-y-Coed, in 1923. This historic cast
iron bridge, constructed by Thomas Telford in 1815, carries the A5 London
to Holyhead road and, although the strengthening work is visible from
below, the concrete has performed well and is not visible on the elevations,
see Fig. 9.22.
In contrast, the strengthening of the cast iron road bridge in Fig. 9.23 has
been carried out very unsympathetically. Apart from the obtrusive
propping, the edge beam on the left-hand span appears to have been
replaced by a reinforced concrete beam which is now spalling along the
soffit arris, see Fig. 9.24.
The drastic solution adopted for the road bridge in Fig. 9.25 was to replace
all the cast iron main beams with pretensioned concrete beams, retaining
only the edge beams. Examples of strengthening such as the two described
above are far too common and are usually driven by minimum cost. Hope-
fully a greater appreciation of our engineering heritage and awareness of
alternative strengthening methods, such as plate bonding, will lead to more
innovative strengthening of existing main members in the future, rather than
propping or replacement.
Plate bonding techniques, more commonly used to strengthen
reinforced/prestressed concrete members, have been developed to
STRENGTHENING 195
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
structure. A prestressing device was developed such that the end anchor-
ages could be clamped to the bottom flanges of the beams eliminating the
need to drill into the cast iron. The trials were successful and provided the
necessary data for the strengthening works. The degree of prestress was
designed to remove all tensile stresses from the cast iron under 40 tonne
loading. This was achieved using four CFRP plates per beam, each stressed
STRENGTHENING 197
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
to a total of 18 tonne. Allowance was made for beam restraint and local
effects, examined by finite element analysis. The prestressing of cast iron
members in this way does raise the issue of potential fatigue cracking which
needs careful consideration and it would be wise to carefully consider the
loss of the prestress due to possible relaxation of the resin during hot
weather.
198 IRON AND STEEL BRIDGES
edge girders and parapets. The new deck comprised steel I-beams fitted
between the services, acting compositely with a concrete deck slab. To
maintain a continuous soffit, flat GRP enclosure panels were installed under
the new beams. The edge girders and parapets were refurbished and sup-
ported off the new hidden edge girders.
The reconstruction of Stephenson’s Britannia Bridge following the fire in
STRENGTHENING 201
triple spandrel-braced steel arches for the main spans and continuous steel
box girders supported on circular concrete columns for the approach spans.
The masonry towers and abutments were not seriously affected by the fire
and were therefore retained. The new design permitted one of the Stephen-
son tubes to be supported by the new steelwork and used for rail traffic,
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
whilst the other was dismantled and replaced by a new rail deck. Also, pro-
vision was made for the inclusion of an upper road deck carrying a diversion
of the A5 London–Holyhead trunk road in order to relieve the loading and
congestion on Telford’s Menai Bridge. Fortunately Stephenson’s other great
tubular bridge at Conway is still in service, although the span was reduced
by 27 m in 1899, see Fig. 9.31.
Secondary members
There are many options available to overcome the problem of under-
strength secondary members compared to main girders/beams, because the
secondary members are generally less visible. Several options were used
for the strengthening of the cast iron grade II listed Mythe Bridge, near Tew-
kesbury, constructed by Telford in 1826. The shear strength of the trans-
verse cross-beams was enhanced by bonding 20 mm thick steel plates to
the web of the cross-beams and the longitudinal cross-bracing at each end
of the bridge was strengthened using 8 mm thick angle splints and the voids
between the splints and cross-bracing was filled with flowable cementitious
grout, see Fig. 9.32. Additional transverse bracing was installed along the
centre spine of the arch, with one end bolted to steel sleeves, in turn epoxy
bonded to the original transverse tie beams and the other end bolted to the
top of the arch cross-beams. The bridge now has a 17 tonne capacity to
allow the Tewkesbury fire brigade to provide cover for villages on the other
side of the river.
The heritage value of secondary members should not be overlooked, just
because they are less visible. On Westminster Bridge mentioned earlier, the
weak buckle plates and cross-beams were effectively made redundant for
load carrying by the new reinforced concrete slab, but they were left in
place to preserve as much of the original structure as possible. Other
options include replacing the original member with a steel member of higher
capacity and replacing the existing decking and/or infill with a lighter
material. For trough decks, additional members can be fitted in the troughs,
encased in a new reinforced concrete slab. In the case of Aireworth Bridge,
Bradford, the secondary members comprised steel Hobson sections (which
have a similar profile to brick jack arches), supported on an inverted T
section. These sections spanned transversely between plate girder edge
beams. It was possible to strengthen this bridge to 40 tonne loading utilising
composite action by fixing HSFB bolts to the Hobson sections and casting
a reinforced concrete slab over the top. For jack arch construction, if the
effective area of the tie bars/rods in the external bays of transverse spanning
jack arches is less than 260 mm2/m length of beam, then the capacity of the
deck is likely to be below optimum. It is usually straightforward to provide
204 IRON AND STEEL BRIDGES
with replica members made from SG iron, thus achieving the same appear-
ance, higher strength, greater toughness and better shock resistance. These
improved properties are achieved by the addition of approximately 0.04%
of magnesium or cerium to molten cast iron, which causes the graphite to
form into small nodules when the metal solidifies. SG iron was used for the
replacement stanchions on the ends of the cross-beams on Brunel’s Clifton
Suspension Bridge, Bristol, see Fig. 9.33, and for the replacement parapets
on Adelaide Bridge and Westminster Bridge mentioned earlier.
Decks
The original metal deck plates spanning between the top flanges of
girders/beams with non-structural pavement material above, rarely meet
current highway loading standards. On Tickford Bridge mentioned earlier,
the problem of fractured cast iron deck plates was solved in 1900 by the
addition of wrought iron arched plates, bolted through the original plates
close to the ribs and in 1976, a 300 mm thick reinforced concrete slab was
laid over the deck on a 20 mm thick cushion of closed cell polyethylene
foam to avoid hard local contact with the cast iron beams. The concrete
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
slab also permitted better distribution of wheel loads, thus reducing the
maximum load on any one arched rib. For the refurbishment of three cast
iron canal footbridges at Farmers Bridge Junction, Birmingham, the deck
plates were blast cleaned and refitted, and steel angles were bonded to the
outer edge of the decks and the inner face of the edge beams to form a
structural connection. A reinforced concrete slab was then cast on top of
the deck plates providing further lateral stability.
A replacement concrete deck can be an economical strengthening sol-
ution and it also provides an ideal surface to support a waterproofing mem-
brane, thus minimising the risk of future corrosion to the metalwork. How-
ever, care is required to minimise the visual impact, as illustrated in Fig. 9.34
Here, a cast iron arched rib bridge has been strengthened by adding a
reinforced concrete deck and infill between the arched ribs. It could be
argued that the appearance of the bridge has now dramatically changed,
however, it has been possible to retain the original main members and the
arch profile has been maintained by replicating the same profile on the
underside of the concrete string course.
Girder decks with either brick jack arches or deck plates spanning from
the bottom flanges of the girders can be strengthened by replacing the fill
with concrete to achieve a composite deck. The jack arches or deck plates
then become nonstructural and can often be preserved. Unfortunately, this
was not the case for the bridge shown in Fig. 9.35. Here, the concrete fill
has been cast on top of permanent steel formwork. Service pipes on both
elevations spoil the appearance of this bridge.
of a U-shaped reinforced concrete strut below the river bed between the
abutments.
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE
Inspection
In order to carry out a successful rehabilitation or strengthening scheme,
it is necessary to undertake a thorough inspection of the bridge. Older metal
bridges present peculiar features which are not found in modern bridges,
therefore it is important that the inspector is aware of these as outlined
below.
The paint systems on metal bridges can hide the fact that members can
be made up of a combination of different metals and possibly timber. Bolts,
screws and rivets were often cleverly hidden. Likely combinations are
detailed in the section on hybrid beams.
When it is required to identify the material it is helpful to be aware that
cast iron has a granular surface, whereas wrought iron and steel have
smoother surfaces and the only certain way to distinguish between wrought
iron and steel is by metallographic examination. However, wrought iron
208 IRON AND STEEL BRIDGES
tends to have a more stringy appearance than steel often visible in areas
of significant corrosion or at the point of fracture. The fracture surface of
cast iron is granular and the cracks tend to be straight or slightly jagged.
The date of bridge construction can be misleading as metal components
were frequently reused.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Maintenance
Painting is the single most important maintenance activity (as opposed to
repair work) in iron and steel bridges. Moreover, it has a strong interaction
with the requirements of good conservation, see also Chapter 13.
Paint and coating systems are used on metal bridges to provide protection
from corrosion. Good surface preparation is critical to achieve the optimum
performance from any paint/coating system, but before the method of sur-
face preparation is selected, it is necessary to establish the extent of work
involved in a site survey. The survey should identify the nature of the exist-
ing protection system, the extent of work and the health and safety hazards
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE 209
with local planning authorities. Different colours can be used to good effect
to highlight structural action, for example stiffeners painted in a darker
colour/shade than the parent plate. Also, in environments where heavy con-
tamination of surfaces is likely, light colours should be avoided as these
rapidly become discoloured. Conversely, light colours may aid visual detec-
tion of fractures or cracks, particularly in cast iron. Historic structures tra-
ditionally had a matt/silk finish coat, however this finish tends to hold more
dirt compared to a gloss finish. The colour and type of finish therefore need
careful consideration on a bridge-specific basis.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Angus, H.T. (1976) Cast Iron: Physical and Engineering Properties. 2nd edn. London:
Butterworths.
Ashurst, J. et al. (1991) Practical Building Conservation. English Heritage Technical
Handbook, Vol. 4 Metals. Gower Technical Press.
Bates, W. (1990) Historical Structural Steelwork Handbook. The British Constructional
Steelwork Association Ltd, London.
Blackwall, A. (1985) Historic Bridges in Shropshire. Shropshire Libraries.
Chettoe, C.S. et al. (1944) ‘The Strength of Cast Iron Girder Bridges’. J. Instn. Civ.
Engrs, 22(8).
Commissioners Appointed to Inquire into the Application of Iron to Railway Struc-
tures. (1849). Report, (2 Volumes). Leeds: HMSO.
Davies, H.E. et al. (1982) The Testing of Engineering Materials. 4th edn. McGraw-Hill.
Doran, D.K. (ed.). (1992) Construction Materials Reference Book. Butterworth
Heinemann.
Matheson, E. (1873) Works in Iron-Bridge and Roof Structures. Spon.
Morgan, J. (1999) ‘The Strength of Victorian Wrought Iron’. Proc. Instn. Civ. Engrs,
Struct. and Bldgs, vol 134.
Sutherland, R.J.M. (1985) Recognition and Appraisal of Ferrous Metal. Proceeding of
Conference on Building Appraisal, Maintenance and Preservation. Bath, July.
Sutherland, R.J.M. (ed.). (1997) Structural Iron 1750–1850. Studies in the History of
Civil Engineering, Volume 9. Ashgate Valiorum.
Swailes, T. (1996) ‘19th Century Cast Iron Beams: Their Design, Manufacture and
Reliability’. Proc. Instn. Civ. Engrs, Civ. Eng. Vol. 114.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Chapter 10
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Suspended bridges
GLOSSARY
Suspended bridge Generic term for suspension, cable-
stayed or hybrid bridge.
Suspension bridge Bridge having its superstructure
suspended from main cables.
Cable-stayed bridge Bridge having its superstructure
supported by stay-cables attached to
towers.
Fan-stays Stay-cables radiating from tops of the
towers in a fan shape.
Harp-stays Stay-cables parallel to one another in a
harp shape.
Hybrid bridge Bridge having both main cables and
stay-cables.
Main cable, catenary cable Often used as a generic term for the
principle suspensive element of a
suspension bridge. Chain or wire-cable.
Stay-cable Supportive element of a cable-stay
bridge, usually wire cable.
Chain Suspensive element used in early
bridges c1800 to 1880. Composed of
wrought iron links and pins.
Wire cable, rope Suspensive element composed of wires,
early versions used wrought iron, later
versions used cold drawn steel.
Hanger, suspender Suspensive element connecting deck to
main cables, early versions were wrought
iron rods, later versions were cables.
214 SUSPENDED BRIDGES
BACKGROUND
In this chapter, methods of conservation of the different types of suspended
bridge are addressed. Particular emphasis is given to suspended footbridges
because they are more numerous and tend to receive less attention than
the longer span highway bridges. Methods of conservation are considered
in relation to the main components, i.e. towers, catenary chains and cables,
hangers and stays, and decks.
Suspended bridges are interesting structures that attract public attention
and affection. Many are sited in scenic locations, where they stand alone
and can be seen at their best. It is therefore important that they are properly
looked after, particularly the lesser known bridges and footbridges that can
sometimes be overlooked. There are few suspended bridges that do not
have a degree of historic significance and therefore merit conservation.
Classical suspension
configuration, e.g.
Whorlton Bridge.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Cable-stays in fan
configuration, e.g.
Galashiels, Scotland
(destroyed in flood).
Cable-stays in harp
configuration, e.g.
Glenisia, Scotland.
James Dredge’s
patented suspension
system, e.g. Victoria
Bridge, Bath.
Performance
Early suspended bridges could be regarded as being rather fragile in com-
parison with, say, masonry arches. There are no reserves of hidden strength
that can be identified by clever methods of analysis and if overloaded, sus-
pended bridges can, and do, collapse without warning, examples are given in
later sections of this chapter. They are prone to vibration and the attendant
problems, also addressed later.
The early suspended bridges were constructed in cast iron and wrought
iron which are materials much less susceptible to corrosion than modern
high strength steel. In consequence, most of the original ironwork has sur-
vived in remarkably good condition despite receiving, in some cases, only
minimal maintenance. There are of course the exceptions where compo-
nents are located in a particularly aggressive environment.
The early suspended bridges invariably had timber decks. Nor surpris-
ingly, these have had to be replaced at regular intervals placing a burden
on maintenance. Over the years many have been changed to materials more
durable than timber, examples are given in the section on decks.
Overall, suspended bridges have performed surprisingly well, as evi-
216 SUSPENDED BRIDGES
denced by the large numbers that have survived, some reconstructed, some
strengthened or otherwise modified, and some in original condition. Some
examples of surviving suspended bridges, up to 180 years old, are listed in
Tables 10.8 to 10.10.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
HIGHWAY BRIDGES
Catenary suspension
Early suspension bridges were stricken with problems due to wind-induced
oscillations and there were numerous cases of serious damage, for example
Brighton Chain Pier was damaged in 1833, 1836 and in 1896 when it was
totally destroyed, and the Menai Bridge was damaged during construction,
twice in 1826, in 1836 and again in 1839. Wind remains a potential problem
for surviving structures, for example Whorlton Bridge, 1831, a high level
suspension bridge across the River Tees was damaged by wind in 1976.
These early designs had little stiffness and relied on the dead weight of
the deck and the resulting tension in the main cables to resist the wind
effects. It was quickly realised that a horizontal wind could cause small verti-
cal oscillations that resonated and developed into large and destructive
deflections. Engineers of the day tackled wind effects in different ways, one
school of thought being to ‘stiffen’ the suspension system. James Dredge
built several bridges, starting with Victoria Bridge across the River Avon at
Bath in 1836, using a patented design of inclined hangers. The bridge was
refurbished in the 1940s and remains in its original form and open to ped-
estrians some 165 years after construction, see Fig. 10.1. This is a good per-
formance for the time, albeit Dredge was fortunate in building on a sheltered
site which would not experience the full effects of wind, and traffic was not
unduly heavy.
More importantly, Rendel advocated the use of truss girders to stiffen the
deck and stabilise behaviour under wind action. In repairing the Montrose
Bridge in 1838, he added a 3 m deep wooden truss to the 132 m span to
give a depth-to-span ratio of 1 to 43. Surprisingly, stiffening of the deck was
not generally adopted in suspension bridge design until some years later.
Suspension bridges were also found to be prone to pedestrian-induced
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Cable-stayed
One of the early cable-stayed bridges was at Craithie (1834) built for vehicu-
lar use, but downgraded to pedestrian use in 1857 and subsequently
renewed in 1885. The Albion Bridge across the River Avon at Twerton was
built by Motley in 1837. This had stay-cables (rods) in the harp configuration
fixed to twin towers at each end. The rods were inter-connected by vertical
hangers to provide stability in a similar manner to the scheme adopted
retrospectively on the second Severn crossing. Unfortunately there is little
information about the bridge’s performance and it was dismantled in 1879.
Haughs of Drimmie Bridge in Scotland (1837) has remained in service having
received minimal maintenance and continues to be open to light traffic.
Other engineers designed hybrid suspension systems having main cables
and a combination of inclined hangers and stays, for example Arnodin’s
Transporter Bridge in Newport, South Wales, see Fig. 10.3.
In Germany, some elegant steel cable-stayed bridges were constructed in
the 1950s and 1960s many of them across the River Rhine. These had light-
weight orthotropic steel decks designed to be economic with material.
In Britain, interest in purely cable-stayed bridges was renewed 127 years
after Twerton Bridge, when Charles Brown designed George Street Bridge
in Newport having a main span of 152 m and completed in 1964, see Fig. 10.4.
This was to be followed by many others including Wye Bridge (1966) which
forms part of the first Severn crossing and has a main span of 235 m, and
Erskine Bridge (1971) across the Upper Clyde which has a span of 305 m.
HIGHWAY BRIDGES 219
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
FOOTBRIDGES
Although there were few significant suspended road bridges constructed in
Britain in the latter half of the nineteenth century, suspended footbridges,
mostly in the classical form with catenary cables and vertical hangers, con-
tinued to be built and there are many remaining examples. Most are in the
span range 30 m to 50 m and have performed well over the years, many
having exceeded the current notional design life of 120 years. Unfortunately
pedestrian bridges have tended to attract less attention than highway and
rail bridges, and less is known about their construction and maintenance
histories. Many have been quietly dismantled and replaced.
Early footbridges
Many of the early footbridges were cable-stayed, some having wire cables,
for example Galashiels (1816) and Kings Meadow (1817). Ruddock has
described these and some of the other bridges built in Scotland and Ireland
between 1816 and 1834, as ‘blacksmith bridges’; they were constructed in
wrought iron and required blacksmith skills to fabricate (Ruddock, 1999).
Some of them also featured the early use of wire cables. Footbridges of this
era that have survived and are still usable include Kirkton Bridge of Glenisia
having harp stays of 16 mm diameter wrought iron rods and iron portals at
each end. A feature of these bridges is their extreme lightweight and elegant
appearance. Decorative ironwork at the bases of the towers of Kirkton
Bridge added balance to their appearance and may also have contributed
some lateral stability. Two of the surviving ‘blacksmith’ bridges, Haughs of
Drimmie (1837) and Craithie (1834) were built for vehicular use.
Gattonside Bridge (1826) across the River Tweed between Melrose and
Gattonside, is a suspension bridge having a conventional configuration, with
chains and vertical hangers of 13 mm diameter. The towers are of masonry
and the main span is 91 m. Sadly, when the bridge was rehabilitated in
1991–1992 much of the elegant ironwork that had survived for 165 years
was replaced.
Stowell Park footbridge, a privately owned structure across the Kennet
and Avon Canal, was designed by James Dredge to his patent system of
suspension and constructed c1840. It has survived in original condition hav-
ing apparently required minimal maintenance beyond replacement of the
timber deck from time to time, see Fig. 10.15. It is not open to the public.
Simplistic footbridges
There is a type of suspension footbridge which can best be described as
simplistic. Such structures are invariably privately owned or ownership is
FOOTBRIDGES 221
Burn Footbridge across the River Exe in Devon has a single span of 30m,
see Fig. 10.5. It is a typical example of a simplistic suspension footbridge,
believed to have been constructed in the mid to late 1800s associated with
a railway line no longer in use. It has a wooden portal tower at one end and
a more recently constructed steel tower at the other, see Fig. 10.6. The main
cables are of circular section link chains and are also shown in Fig. 10.6. At
one end, the chains are joined together several metres beyond the wooden
tower and a stranded wire cable of 19 mm diameter completes the connec-
tion to a substantial concrete anchorage.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Protective wrapping around the tie-back cable has been rubbed and dam-
aged by grazing cattle. At the other end, the chains were previously tied to
a tree, but are now anchored conventionally. The hangers are rods of 16
mm diameter looped over the chains and bolted to cross-rods at deck level.
Longitudinal wooden planks are bolted to the cross-beams to form the 560
mm wide deck. A handrail of 13 mm diameter is positioned on either side.
The bridge is very lively being prone to simultaneous horizontal (sway)
and vertical oscillations. It also has a disconcerting tendency to ‘crab’, pos-
ing an added threat to pedestrians. At the time the bridge was inspected,
there was no significant corrosion and it could be considered to be in rela-
tively good condition, if the unconventional aspects can be ignored.
Backs Wood Footbridge, also across the River Exe, is a simplistic structure
having two spans of 10 m and 16 m, see Fig. 10.7. It has three portal towers
2.4 m high and constructed of bolted steel beams. The towers are of more
recent construction than the rest of the bridge and do not match the size
of the central masonry river piers, see Fig. 10.8. The three masonry piers
have been capped with concrete such that two of the towers are bolted in
place and the third has its base partly encased in concrete.
The main cables are wire ropes of 50 mm diameter passing over pulley
wheels acting as cradles and fixed to the tops of the towers, as shown in
Fig. 10.7. At the time of inspection, there were several broken wires but
these were isolated occurrences and the cables were otherwise in surpris-
ingly good condition.
Hanger rods of 13 mm diameter are freely looped over the main cable
where they are held in place longitudinally by friction alone. This connection
although seemingly insecure has the advantage that detritus is unlikely to
settle and encourage corrosion, as occurs in fixed connections. It is an
example of a case where it is best to let well alone. At their bottom ends
the hangers are bolted to cross-rods. The deck is composed of longitudinal
timber planks fixed on to the cross-rods, and is 560 mm wide so that, like
Burn Footbridge, there is room for only one person to cross at a time. A
handrail of 13 mm diameter is positioned on either side of the deck. Several
of the hangers had been bent out of shape, presumed to be the work of van-
dals.
As with Burn Footbridge, the structure is very lively, having first bending
and lateral sway frequencies of around 1 Hz. Walking frequencies for the
average person are in the range of 1.5 to 2.5 Hz, but the natural reaction
when crossing is to slow down due to the rickety appearance of the bridge,
and ‘lock-on’ to the bridge frequency. This worsens the oscillations. In con-
trast, when crossed at a normal pace rate the bridge is much less lively,
but this requires a degree of courage. The structure could be stiffened if
the deck were fixed to the central pier, the original fixings having become
ineffective. At the time it was inspected, there was little corrosion.
224 SUSPENDED BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
A simplistic footbridge in the USA, shown in Fig. 10.9, has concrete portal
towers and main cables of stranded wire rope, as defined in Table 10.6.
Hanger bars are looped over the cables and locked more positively than
Backs Wood Bridge. The timber plank deck is arranged in a similar manner,
but is in need of repair as shown in Fig. 10.9.
Although unsuitable to be used by the general public, and having lost
much of their originality, simplistic footbridges are typically at least 100
years old and have heritage value and a certain charm that is worth retain-
ing. However, even in their as-built condition, simplistic footbridges would
have been hazardous in relation to the standards of safety required now-
adays.
Later footbridges
Teddington Lock Footbridge, constructed in 1889 but modified some years
later, is typical of the next stage in the development of suspension foot-
bridges, see Fig. 10.10. The towers are of riveted iron frames having their
legs encased in concrete and their cross-beams exposed. The main cables
are composed of twin wire ropes kept apart by the hanger brackets, the
hangers are steel rods. The nearside end span shown in Fig. 10.10 has an
FOOTBRIDGES 225
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
unusual feature with the footway skewed to the direction of the main span.
There are additional stay-cables, also skewed. In 2001, the original main
cables and hangars were still in place, having survived 112 years’ service.
Substantial lattice parapets contribute stiffness to the superstructure, never-
theless it can be excited and is regarded locally as being lively.
Gaol Ferry Footbridge, Bristol, constructed by David Rowell in 1935 is of
lattice construction, see Fig. 10.11. There are similarities to the Teddington
Lock Footbridge in that the main cables are twin wire ropes on each side
having similar hanger brackets and hanger rods. It has given excellent ser-
vice over 65 years’ service life and required no significant refurbishment
beyond the normal cycles of repainting.
In contrast to the good performance of Gaol Ferry Footbridge, Trews Weir
Footbridge, Exeter, constructed in 1935 and of similar design, has given less
satisfactory service. Some of the hanger rods fractured due to a combination
of corrosion and high stresses, and were replaced by stainless steel in 1984.
Most of the trusses and steelwork were renewed in 1993, leaving the towers,
catenary cables and anchorages in their original form. The footbridge has
a reputation for lively behaviour and ‘children love to get it going’. This plus
its nearness to the sea and the consequential presence of chlorides may
account for the deterioration.
Burgate Footbridge in Hampshire is one of the few suspension footbridges
226 SUSPENDED BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
to be built in Britain since the 1930s. It was designed by E.W.H. Gifford and
used recycled elements from Bailey bridging. The structure is economic and
elegant, representing an advanced level of simplicity and economy that has
not been equalled in recent times. It remains in its original condition having
required no significant refurbishment over 52 years of admittedly light ser-
vice in a rural environment, see Fig. 10.12.
Some examples of suspended footbridges are given at the end of this chap-
ter in Table 10.10.
CONSERVATION OF TOWERS 227
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
CONSERVATION OF TOWERS
The towers for catenary suspension bridges were sometimes single pillars,
but more commonly portal frames at each end of the suspended span. There
were different systems of articulation, as categorised by Pugsley (1968):
(1) Stiff towers fixed at their bases and having saddles at their tops that
permit the main cables to slide in a span-wise direction
(2) Towers hinged at their bases to permit rotation in the span-wise direc-
tion and having the main cables fixed at their tops, ie acting as sim-
ple struts.
(3) Towers fixed at their bases and having the main cables fixed at their
tops, i.e. acting as vertical cantilevers.
The older bridges usually had type (1) towers and were constructed in
masonry, cast iron or wrought iron. Type (2) towers, hinged at their bases,
are a more recent development made possible by plated steel construction
used earlier by French engineers. Long-span bridges of the twentieth cen-
tury have usually been type (3).
The principal forms of loading are vertical compression, wind and longi-
tudinal movement of the main cables. On occasions when saddle bearings
at the tops of the towers become seized, movement of the superstructure
has to be accommodated by rocking of the towers. In practice this has rarely
caused problems as the towers, particularly masonry ones, are sufficiently
flexible to be able to cope with the movements.
Masonry
Masonry towers have performed well as they have usually been constructed
of good quality stone and there are many surviving examples in excellent
condition having required minimal maintenance over the years. There have
been cases where rendering has been applied, but records have been
unclear as to whether this was an original architectural finish, or a retro-
spective addition. Maintenance is best carried out using the methods
228 SUSPENDED BRIDGES
‘flattened’ and the key stone settled by 50 mm. The structure was strength-
ened to restrain further movement by fitting four tie-bars of 25 mm diameter
into holes of 63 mm diameter, and tensioned. When the ties were grouted,
the pressurised cementitious grout leaked out of the mortar joints and it
was necessary to stop grouting and substitute polyurethane foam. Leakage
of pressurised grout through joints in masonry is not unusual and in retro-
spect it is evident that preventative measures such as repointing beforehand
or use of a grout-sock would have prevented it. The refurbished structure
is shown in Fig. 10.13.
Lattice
Lattice towers, whether iron or steel, require the usual maintenance of cle-
aning and painting in regular cycles, depending on the aggressiveness of the
local environment. Steel is more susceptible to corrosion than wrought iron
and requires more attention as sections can quickly become seriously cor-
roded and weakened. Lattice towers were a popular form of construction
in the 1920s and 1930s, and there are many surviving examples, see for
example Fig. 10.14.
Where iron or steel sections have become structurally weakened, repairs
are sometimes made by bolted cover plates. However, it is difficult to pro-
vide adequate protection by painting and further corrosion can quickly
develop at the interfaces between new and old material. It is generally pref-
erable to cut-out the weakened section and weld in place new material. At
the locations where the legs of towers interface with the ground, detritus
can become deposited and vegetation can grow around the metalwork.
These locations are particularly prone to corrosion. This has sometimes
been tackled by casting a concrete plinth on to the foundation to encase the
lower steel work, so that the weakened area is supported and the vulnerable
interface is raised above ground level. However, locations where there is a
steel-to-concrete interface are vulnerable to corrosion and it remains neces-
sary to inspect and clean them regularly. Lattice towers that have become
particularly badly corroded have sometimes been encased in concrete up
to the saddles carrying the main cables at the tops, for example Alum Chine
Footbridge in Bournemouth. This fundamentally alters the appearance and
is a solution which may be fully justified on economic grounds, but the
preferred treatment of a heritage structure is to replace the weakened parts
and retain its appearance.
230 SUSPENDED BRIDGES
Timber
Some of the early footbridges were constructed with timber towers, but
have subsequently had more durable materials substituted or been demol-
ished. One of the surviving examples, Burn Footbridge, is shown in Fig. 10.5.
Concrete
Concrete towers were introduced in the late 1800s as riveted iron frames
encased in concrete, see Fig. 10.16. This form of construction has performed
well, but can deteriorate due to corrosion of the frame causing cracking and
spalling of the concrete and it is necessary to monitor conditions for cor-
rosion activity. Steel remained the preferred choice for many years and con-
ventional reinforced concrete did not become fully established until the
1960s.
Examples of renovation work and strengthening of towers are summarised
in Table 10.2.
Chains
Catenary chains were composed of parallel eye bars and links, see Fig. 10.17.
There was evident concern about the risks of failure and most bridges had
two or three parallel chains on either side of the carriageway usually pos-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
itioned vertically above one another. Wrought iron is less prone to cor-
rosion than steel and in consequence the performances of chains has been
generally good. The main requirement for maintenance is due to wear of
the pin-joints in the chain assemblage.
There have been several occasions when chains have been replaced by
wire-cables to provide extra strength and one where a wire-cable was fitted
in addition to existing twin chains. More recently the wrought iron chains
of Marlow Bridge were refurbished using new steel links. The longevity of
the chains on Clifton Bridge has been ascribed partly to having been proof-
loaded so that compressive residual stress was imposed (a technique prac-
tised at that time).
The likelihood of fracture of an element of the chain, leading to collapse
of the bridge, has to be considered. This occurred in Silver Bridge across
the Ohio River between Point Pleasant and Gallipolis in the USA. After some
40 years’ service, the bridge collapsed without warning in December 1967
when loaded by heavy traffic, forty-six people were killed and nine injured.
It was found that an eye bar had fractured due to stress corrosion or cor-
rosion fatigue (the investigation was unable to conclude which). As a pre-
cautionary measure, a similar bridge nearby was dismantled. It has been
suggested that components of the chains of other bridges are less highly
stressed and are therefore unlikely to fracture. On the occasions when
chains have been inspected in Britain using ultrasonic detection equipment,
no cracks have been found.
There have been occasions when chains have been badly corroded in
vulnerable locations, for example at anchorages. Here the chains have some-
times been strengthened by adding links.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Cables
As confidence grew in the durability of wire cables, they were adopted for
long-span bridges in place of chains. Catenary cables of long-span bridges
have generally been fabricated on site into bundles of parallel wires. Individ-
ual wires have usually been galvanised to provide protection against cor-
rosion. The bundles are squeezed into a cylindrical shape, sometimes a hex-
agonal shape has been favoured.
Hangers are attached to the cables by clamps, which also act to keep the
bundled wires in place. The lengths between the clamps are coated with red
lead paste, wrapped in soft wire, and the assemblage is painted to provide a
seal against ingress of water. Alternatively, bituminous material has been
used to fill interstices between individual wires and provide an external seal.
The catenary (wire) cables of long span bridges have generally been well
protected and have exhibited good durability to date. A 9 m length of the
main cable of Tamar Bridge was exposed after 34 years and the wires were
found to be in excellent condition. In the USA, this form of cable construc-
tion was introduced much earlier, a number of the catenary cables are now
100 to 150 years old, and there have been several cases where inspections
have revealed various degrees of corrosion in the outer wires. In some cases
there was adequate remnant strength, in others it was considered necessary
to repair local fractures by splicing and retensioning the broken wires.
The catenary cables of Wheeling Bridge, West Virginia, USA, are composed
of parallel wrought iron wires. In 1983 the original protection was sup-
plemented by neoprene wrapping. Unfortunately moisture entered, either
through condensation or at the saddles where protection could not be total,
and caused some of the wires to corrode. In the 1990s, the neoprene was
removed to enable the wires to be inspected and repaired. Broken or badly
corroded wires were repaired by splicing lengths of new wire connected by
a ferrule at one end and tensioned by a splice clamp at the other. A tra-
ditional wire wrapping was applied to provide protection to the cable. This
was selected as having a proven history of good performance over many
years but in any case, it is more appropriate for a historic bridge. At one
of the anchorage chambers there had been leakage and consequential cor-
rosion causing numerous wire fractures and up to 35% loss in the area of
the anchor bars. As it was not possible to repair all the wires, an auxiliary
support system having high strength threaded bars was fitted to bypass the
corroded sections. A so-called fail-safe device fitted across some of the
broken wires in one of the cables outside the anchorage is shown in
Fig. 10.18.
The catenary cables of shorter span bridges and footbridges have gener-
ally been prefabricated in factory conditions and transported to site. Pre-
fabricated cables were commonly used for hangers and stays. There are
several types of configuration as illustrated in Table 10.3.
successive layers of wire wound round a central king wire. The incli-
nations of the helices are alternated for each layer to avoid unwinding
during transport and at the curvature over the tower saddles when
under load. This configuration has the highest packing density and elas-
tic modulus.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
쐌 Locked coil strands are wound in a similar manner to spiral strand but
have the outer layer, or layers, of non-circular wires which are z-shaped
to interlock with each other and leave no interstices where corrosion
could occur. In practice, locked coils have not prevented corrosion. This
is probably due to the imperceptible opening and closing of gaps
between adjacent wires caused by live loading permitting ingress of
moisture and contaminants which become trapped.
쐌 Rope is composed of a group of strands wound in a helix round a central
strand. This configuration has a lower packing density and presents an
increased area of wire exposed to corrosion. There are also a larger
number of interstices where contaminants and detritus can collect. In
practice, very severe corrosion and multiple wire failures can occur in
the central strand. Rope has a low and uncertain modulus of elasticity.
쐌 Parallel wire cable, spun in situ, is the configuration commonly used for
catenary cables on long span suspension bridges.
Here a cover plate, fitted over the saddle, has been raised to enable the
exposed cable to be inspected.
An example of a main cable having failed protection is shown in Fig. 10.20.
Protective tape has sometimes been used for main cables of suspension
footbridges, see for example Fig. 10.21. In this example, a metal fence has
been built too close to the cable and there has been chaffing and consequen-
tial damage to the protection.
Anchorages are often damp and difficult to keep dry. When faced with
corrosion damage the space is often filled with concrete so that the cables
are fully embedded. However, the interface where the cable enters the con-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Hanger cables
For hanger cables, the weakest part is the connection with the socket. When
tested to failure some of the early hangers have failed suddenly and in a
brittle manner at the sockets. Ultrasonic inspection has been used success-
fully to detect failed wires, which usually occur in the vicinity of the sockets.
In the case of the Severn Bridge, individual wires were found to be frac-
tured in the vicinity of the socket, but the hangers were not severed. Met-
allographic examination showed that the mechanism of failure was cor-
rosion fatigue, see Fig. 10.24. The hanger was redesigned to have a larger
diameter cable and a connection having transverse articulation, as well as
longitudinal, as shown in Fig. 10.25. The transverse articulation was intro-
duced to allow for the racking action caused by the passage of heavy
vehicles.
The connection to the socket can also present potential sites for the com-
mon form of corrosion as evidenced by Fig. 10.26. Here the hanger cable
has been protected by a polymer sheath which has been inadequately
sealed against the socket. The cable has been exposed at the entry point
into the socket and serious corrosion has occurred.
CONSERVATION OF HANGERS AND STAYS 243
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
As for catenary cables, hanger cables have usually been protected from
corrosion by galvanising of the individual wires during manufacture and
painting the assemblage after erection. It has the added advantages that the
wires are easy to inspect and it is convenient for maintenance work.
Recently, there has been a move away from galvanising due to a fear of
hydrogen embrittlement but no such failures have been identified to date.
When hanger cables have been observed to exhibit significant vibration
due to the effects of wind, vehicular traffic or pedestrians, they can be cor-
rected by fitting Stockbridge ‘dampers’, see Fig. 10.27. Although they are
usually called dampers they are actually small weights fitted at locations on
the cable so that the frequencies are changed and resonances are minimised
or eliminated under normal use. Alternatively added structural damping can
be provided by automobile-type shock absorbers fitted between the cables
and deck. This has been done successfully on several cable-stayed bridges.
Stays
Stay-cables, like hangers, can be lively under dynamic excitation. This is
usually discovered soon after construction and appropriate action taken,
for example by restraining the cables with transverse ties or the provision
of additional damping. Where this has been done it is necessary to inspect
the system regularly because ties can, and do, fail. It cannot be assumed
244 SUSPENDED BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
that an old bridge having a record of stable behaviour will never give prob-
lems as rare events can occur which may require attention.
For hybrid bridges having more than one system of cables there may be
situations where they can rub together and cause damage. This can be over-
come by fitting clamps that prevent abrasion whilst allowing relative move-
ment and correct distribution of loads between hangers and stay-cables,
see Fig. 10.28,
Examples of the methods for conservation of hangers and stay-cables are
summarised in Table 10.5.
CONSERVATION OF DECKS
Many of the early suspension bridges were damaged by wind and their
decks had to be strengthened soon after construction. Others, designed to
carry horse-drawn vehicles, have been strengthened successively to carry
the increases in traffic loading that have occurred over the years. In conse-
quence, many of the decks of historic bridges are composed of a mixture
of new and old materials. Some of the strengthening that had to be carried
out soon after construction has become historically significant in its own
CONSERVATION OF DECKS 245
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
right, for example the introduction of stiffening, whereas other more recent
strengthening has been carried out on elements beneath the running surface
where it is hidden from the general public. Interestingly, on occasions when
strengthening is carried out, the opportunity is sometimes taken to restore
parts of the structure to their original form. When assessing maintenance
requirements, it is necessary to take into account differing characteristics
of new and old materials, for example the lower corrosion resistance of steel
in relation to wrought iron.
There are few historic suspension bridges still in original condition that
are capable, or potentially capable, of carrying full traffic loading to current
requirements. In consequence, most have weight restrictions albeit there is
no guarantee they will be respected. Bailliery Bridge in Northern Ireland
had a 2 tonne restriction, but was destroyed in 1988 by the passage of a 27
tonne vehicle whose driver had lost his way.
Where strengthening of the deck is considered appropriate and other
parts of the structure are adequate, it is necessary to design schemes that
are sympathetic to the appearance. Where possible, edge beams are left
unchanged and longitudinal beams are fitted inside where they cannot
directly be seen.
There are suspension bridges on less significant routes and restricted to
pedestrians, that attract less interest and have to be maintained on low
budgets. Some are mainly in their original form, but have been around for
more than 100 years and are reaching the stage where refurbishment is
required. One of the most common requirements is to provide extra lateral
stability as original designs tended to rely on the stiffening action of timber
decking. This has been done on several occasions by fitting unobtrusive
steel cross-bracing.
246 SUSPENDED BRIDGES
Many wooden decks have been replaced by more durable materials such
as galvanised iron sheet, steel plate and concrete. Where timber has been
retained, there is a continuing problem of keeping it waterproof as leakage
on to the members beneath causes decay. It is necessary to use good quality
treated timber to obtain an acceptable working life and avoid constant main-
tenance. It is also necessary to have an acceptable skid-free surface.
The decks of suspension footbridges tend to be lively and can exhibit
significant vibration. It has been observed that 98% of people walk at pace
rates of 1.5 to 2.5 Hz and jog at 2.8 to 3.0 Hz. It follows that decks having
first bending frequencies in these ranges are susceptible to excitation. Most
of the older bridges have been modified, usually by stiffening, to make them
less lively. However, there are some that have survived and are still lively.
A by-product of refurbishment can be to bring bridges into the lively range
by reduced damping or by making small changes in bending frequency.
Lively behaviour and vibration can be a problem if the levels are unaccept-
able to the general public or the action is sufficient to cause fatigue or struc-
tural damage. Exceedance of the static strength of a component, as for the
Broughton Bridge, is most unlikely as excessively weak bridges have long
since been strengthened or collapsed, albeit there remains exceptions such
as Bailliery which cannot be protected against errant motorists. Lively
behaviour of decks can be minimised by increased stiffness or added damp-
ing. Increased stiffness normally requires the addition of extra steelwork
and is a rather inefficient method having the added drawback that it is liable
to change the appearance of the structure. Added damping is more elegant
and can be designed to be unobtrusive; for example, friction devices can
be introduced where there is relative movement at bearings and at joints
in the hand rails. Tuned dynamic absorbers (mass-spring-dashpot systems)
can be fitted beneath the deck to provide excellent damping, but require
248 SUSPENDED BRIDGES
monitoring from time to time as the system can drift out of tune. However,
it is only necessary to change the dynamic characteristics if there is good
reason to do so, for example if the bridge becomes used by a different seg-
ment of the public who are less tolerant to vibration, usually the elderly
and infirm. Lively footbridges are usually (but not always) located in the
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE
In managing the older suspension and cable-stayed bridges it is not possible
to follow ideal principles on all occasions as there are invariably constraints
to be taken into account. It is therefore necessary to tailor conservation to
suit the circumstances.
Factors that dictate strategy include:
There are numerous suspension bridges over 100 years old and located
in highly populated locations, where they are required to carry high vol-
umes of traffic and it is not acceptable to impose excessively low weight
limits. It has been necessary to strengthen them by introducing new material
to the extent that they resemble the original structures in appearance only.
Good practice requires that the appearance is not significantly changed and
original material is retained where possible, particularly components in pub-
lic view, such as edge beams. For these cases the money required to finance
the work can usually be found. For bridges in less populated areas not on
main routes, the money is less readily available.
Heritage requirements are broadly to limit changes and retain as much
of the original structure as possible.
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE 249
Inspection
Suspended bridges are often located across rivers or gorges so that access
for a comprehensive inspection requires expensive equipment. This has
been recognised in some cases. For example, Clifton Bridge has a gantry to
facilitate inspection of the underside of the superstructure and safety lines
fitted to the catenary chains to enable harnesses to be clipped in place, as
shown in Figs 5.21 and 6.17.
The techniques for inspecting the constituent materials are mentioned in
the chapters on masonry, iron and steel, timber and concrete.
Components of suspended bridges can experience relatively high cyclic
stresses with the consequential likelihood of fatigue damage. The collapse
of Silver Bridge across the Ohio River in the USA in 1967, mentioned earlier,
is a forceful reminder of the need to be aware of fatigue. The fact that a
bridge has stood for 100 years or more without problems, and is subject to
a weight limit, is no guarantee that it will continue to do so, particularly if
it is subjected to the increased volumes of modern traffic. Where fatigue is
suspected, the locations identified as being susceptible should be investi-
gated. These locations can be monitored to determine the severity of the
stress ranges, or they can be inspected to determine whether cracking has
developed. Monitoring can be carried out using strain gauges to measure
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE 251
the stress ranges imposed by known traffic loading. The fatigue life can then
be calculated using standard methods. To carry out an effective inspection
for fatigue it is essential to be within touching distance. There are various
methods of detecting cracks, for example, ultrasonic and magnetic particle
detection. It is usual to concentrate on the locations where cracking is most
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Maintenance
The most common maintenance activities are concerned with:
쐌 deteriorated masonry (failed mortar, deteriorated stonework, cracking)
252 SUSPENDED BRIDGES
쐌 rotted timber
쐌 wear
쐌 corrosion
쐌 wet and corroded anchorages
쐌 excessively lively behaviour
쐌 overloaded hangers
쐌 fatigue
쐌 seized bearings
Forth (road) 1964 Roberts 1006 Cables, steel deck with stiffener
truss. Strengthened 1990s.
Wye, First 1966 Roberts 235 Two single towers, single cables.
Severn Strengthened and cables
Crossing reconfigured in 1991.
Lyne, Surrey 1979 Kretsis 55–55 Twin towers, harp/fan cables 27°
skew concrete railway bridge.
Said to be the ugliest bridge in
Britain.
Wear can occur in moving parts such as the pin joints in chains. This has
been discussed briefly in the section on chains.
Corrosion is a common problem that can affect all metal components,
particularly cables. The locations on cables that most commonly corrode
are the hanger connections, saddles and anchorages. Corrosion of steelwork
can occur at ground level and locations, such as re-entrant geometry where
detritus can build up. Corrosion can be minimised by regular maintenance
cleaning and painting. There are some good examples of well-maintained
bridges having cables still in original condition after being in service for 70
years or more.
Anchorages for catenary cables are commonly below ground level where
they can become partially filled, or entirely filled, with silt and detritus. This
retains water and de-icing salts to create a corrosive environment. The
anchorage chamber should therefore be regularly cleaned and drainage
channels kept open. The cables or chains should likewise be inspected for
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE 255
bridges have mostly been stiffened in their early years. Vibrations can be
caused by wind and by pedestrians walking or running at rates that coincide
with bending frequencies in the structure. Lively behaviour as such is an
irritant to pedestrians and can be troublesome to elderly and infirm people.
It is a challenge to vandals which could provoke them to vibrate the bridge
sufficiently to cause damage. It follows that it is prudent to take maintenance
action to ensure that the inherent values of damping are retained. Methods
of dealing with excessively lively behaviour are outlined in the section on
hanger cables.
Fatigue is fairly common in short hangers around mid-span. It is usually
caused by longitudinal and transverse bending action of traffic, pedestrians
or wind loading. It may suffice to replace fatigue fractured hangers on a like-
for-like basis if the life to fracture has been sufficiently long. When fatigue
lives are unacceptably short, it is necessary to consider redesigning the
hangers to introduce adequate articulation. Other methods are discussed
in the section on hanger cables.
In cases where there is an unacceptable distribution of load between the
hanger cables it will be necessary to take appropriate action. Redistribution
of load may be difficult when there are no means of adjusting the hangers
and for these cases it may be necessary fit special connectors (hanger
cables were usually made to size and there was no way to adjust them
during construction or subsequently).
It is not uncommon for bearings in the suspension system to be seized
and inoperative. These are at the tops of towers where the catenary cables
should slide over cradles, and at anchorages of hanger cables where there
are usually pin joints to permit rotation (as described earlier). Ideally these
bearings should be lubricated and kept free to move, but this is usually not
possible and in any case many have never been capable of articulation from
day one. Fortunately, the structures have usually been able to cope by alter-
native movements. The exception is the short hangers at centre-span of
catenary suspension bridges, where the enforced bending can lead to
fatigue fractures.
The above has been concerned almost exclusively with early suspension
bridges and early cable-stayed bridges. The more recent cable-stayed
bridges are relatively young by comparison and have not yet developed a
track record. Nevertheless there have been several where the stay-cables
exhibited excessively lively behaviour to the extent that it was necessary
to install extra damping and restraint. The more recent forms of construc-
tion bring different maintenance issues, for example:
Fortunately these issues have been well researched in recent years and
BIBLIOGRAPHY 257
than bad practice. Examples of the latter that have been observed include:
BIBLIOGRAPHY
The Institution of Civil Engineers, various proceedings.
Civil Engineering Heritage Series (1981 to 1998), Publ. Institution of Civil Engineers,
London.
Ruddock, T. (1999) Blacksmith Bridges in Scotland and Ireland, 1816–1834. Proceed-
ings of International Conference on Historic Bridges to celebrate the 150th anni-
versary of the Wheeling Suspension Bridge. 21–23 October 1999, West Virginia
University Press.
Paxton, R.A. (1999) Early Development of the Long Span Suspension Bridges in Britain
1810–1840. Proceedings of International Conference on Historic Bridges to cel-
ebrate the 150th anniversary of the Wheeling Suspension Bridge. 21–23 October
1999, West Virginia University Press.
Pugsley, S.A. (1968) The Theory of Suspension Bridges, Edward Arnold, London.
Gurney, T.R. (1992) Fatigue of Steel Bridge Decks. TRL State-of-the-Art-Review, HMSO.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Chapter 11
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Movable bridges
GLOSSARY
Rack A bar having teeth or indentations which engage with
teeth of a wheel, pinion or worm, for the conversion of
circular motion into linear motion. The rack may be linear
or curved, and may be attached to either the moving
elements of the bridge or the supporting structure.
Pintle A pin or bolt on which some other part turns, e.g. the
main support to a swing bridge, and about which the
bridge rotates. The pintle provides lateral restraint to
the bridge and may be the principal support or may act
in conjunction with other supports such as rollers.
BACKGROUND
Movable bridges have played an important role in the development of bridge
engineering and this has been recognised by the number that have either
been listed or recorded as having historic significance. Numbers are dimin-
ishing as uses of inland waterways change and the movable bridges are
either demolished or fixed in position. It follows that there is a need to carry
out conservation work on some of the more significant survivors. Infor-
mation is rather sparse as it is limited to the more notable examples and
surprisingly little has been written about movable bridges per se. This chap-
ter, therefore, deals with a gap in the technical literature that has not pre-
viously been fully addressed.
The best-known movable bridge in Britain, Tower Bridge, London, is a
good example of proactive conservation as it is both historic and has to be
maintained as one of the major crossings of the River Thames. Over recent
years, considerable resource has been expended in maintenance and con-
servation, and in developing the bridge as a significant London tourist
attraction in its own right. Yet the primary purpose of the bridge remains
to allow shipping to move up the Thames, whilst minimising delay to the
significant volume of road traffic and pedestrian users of the bridge. To this
end modern power plant and control systems have been put in place, whilst
preserving the appearance of the bridge.
Engineers have devised numerous systems for lifting, dropping, folding,
rotating and retracting a span to provide temporary clearance for shipping.
The various bridge types can be categorised by movements corresponding
to four of the six degrees of freedom.
The Gateshead Millennium Footbridge across the River Tyne extends the
range to a fifth degree of freedom by rotating about the axis of the bridge.
While examples of all bridge types can be found crossing the smallest
of spans (usually canals), there exists a progression from drawbridge to
BACKGROUND 261
swingbridge to bascule bridge to lift bridge, which can be related not only
to the size of the span crossed, but also to technical advances in design
and materials and to levels of economic activity. Indeed the individual his-
tories of many of the movable bridges of today reflect this progression.
The majority of movable bridges in Britain were constructed in the late
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1800s and early 1900s giving access to inland ports. This corresponded to
a period of growth of trade by shipping. At the time the volumes of road
traffic were modest by today’s standards and a movable bridge provided
an economic solution, being able to be constructed at river level. As both
shipping and traffic levels increased, the delays to road traffic in particular
became more significant, and it became economic to consider high level
crossings or alternative routes.
During the later part of the twentieth century, the amount of inland ship-
ping has declined and many movable bridges have been replaced with fixed
bridges, or have been fixed permanently in the closed position. In conse-
quence movable bridges have generally become less important in Britain.
Where they have survived, the older ones are now becoming historic and
require conservation. To date most of the work carried out on movable
bridges has been in the nature of rehabilitation, where the bridge is treated
as having little intrinsic value but worth keeping. This is exemplified by
timber canal swing bridges which have sometimes been replaced by similar
steel structures. Conservation has generally been limited to outstanding
structures, such as Tower Bridge, London, Tyne Swingbridge and the Trans-
porter Bridges at Middlesborough and Newport, Gwent.
Performance
The performances of movable bridges in relation to serviceability have been
rather variable, depending on the type of movement, materials and con-
struction. Moreover, due to their moving parts, they require more mainte-
nance than fixed bridges constructed in similar materials. Many of the early
movable bridges, particularly drawbridges and swingbridges, were con-
structed in timber and the maintenance costs of replacing decayed members
led to modification and reconstruction in more durable materials. In this
sense, the early movable bridges constructed in cast iron and wrought iron
have performed much better.
Early machinery was cumbersome and has usually had to be updated to
meet modern traffic requirements of speed of opening and closing the high-
way. Moreover, some movements were steam-driven and outdated. In conse-
quence, machinery has often been partly or wholly replaced by modern
equipment and power supplies, giving enhanced performances. This is
regrettable as early mechanical and electrical equipment has historic impor-
tance in its own right. Where it is still in place, its merit should be assessed
and important examples retained.
Damage caused by ship impact is fairly common and some movable
bridges have been virtually destroyed to the extent that they have had to
be reconstructed or replaced altogether.
In consequence of these factors, few movable bridges have survived to
262 MOVABLE BRIDGES
old age in anything like their original form so that, unlike their fixed counter-
parts, their long-term performances have not been fully tested. There are
exceptions such as the transporter bridges at Newport Gwent and Middles-
borough, but these do not have to serve heavily trafficked highways.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
vessels inland, and the only significant British vertical lift bridge was the
Kingsferry Bridge, which serves both rail and road traffic across the River
Swale to the Isle of Sheppey. Kingsferry was constructed in 1960 as a
replacement for a Scherzer Bascule of 1904. A lift bridge constructed at New-
port, Middlesborough in 1934 was operational until 1990 when it was fixed
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Substructures
Movable bridges have a high likelihood of being struck by errant ships and
there are numerous examples of collisions causing serious damage. Protec-
tion of the substructures, by fenders or other means, is therefore essential.
If there is a large tidal range, then the height of a fixed fendering system
would be correspondingly large. In this case a floating fendering system
should be considered, which may be guided by fixed vertical piles. Such
fendering systems can be effective for glancing impacts at relatively low
velocity. However, they may have disadvantages that would in some circum-
stances outweigh their benefits:
strength and shape of the bridge substructure to deflect impacts and on the
skills of navigators.
Conventional fendering systems are unlikely to have adequate capacity
to absorb abnormal impacts. In this case, two main options may be con-
sidered: no fendering system and the bridge substructure having to resist
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
the maximum design impact force, perhaps with significant damage to the
bridge, but without collapse; or a collision protection system that may
include sacrificial elements which suffer substantial damage, but which
would stop or deflect an errant vessel without collapse of the bridge.
In the first option, the bridge substructure may have the mass, strength
and foundation capacity to resist abnormal collision loads, albeit with some
damage. If these are insufficient it may be feasible to augment their
capacity by:
쐌 Rock islands upstream and downstream of the piers, or around the end
of the piers. The vessel is stopped or deflected by grounding on the
islands.
쐌 Single piles, piled dolphins or caissons upstream and downstream of
the piers. Kinetic energy is expended in the progressive ductile collapse
of these elements.
쐌 Pontoons or barges moored upstream and downstream of the piers.
Energy is expended in dragging heavy mooring anchors.
쐌 Collapsible shells or other energy-absorbing devices installed at either
end of the piers.
Superstructures
The superstructure of a movable bridge is subject to a wider range of load-
ing and loading conditions than the comparable fixed bridge.
A particularly important consideration in both assessing an existing mov-
268 MOVABLE BRIDGES
Ballast
Many of the forms of movable bridge rely on the use of ballast or counter-
weights to balance the self-weight of the main structure and allow the bridge
to be moved by the application of fairly modest forces. In the past ballast
may have been used in situations when nowadays it is practical to have a
fail safe system so that direct force can be used.
When originally designed, the driving force required to operate the bridge
would have been determined in relation to the calculated out-of-balance
force, with suitable reserve. However, it is important that this relationship
is checked and maintained over time to take account of changes in material
properties e.g. frictional resistance effects of settlements, or reduced
efficiency of the driving or braking system.
Normally the balance arrangement for a movable structure will seek to
provide at least small positive reactions in the ‘closed’ position. In undertak-
ing strengthening or remedial works to the main superstructure, any
changes to the weight or to the distribution of that weight, must be
accompanied by an appropriate adjustment to the balancing weight. Even
the removal of years of accumulated paint systems can reduce the weight
by up to several tonnes, and require the structure to be rebalanced.
Techniques are now available to optimise the balance state of a bridge
and hence reduce the likelihood of motors being overloaded. These are dis-
cussed further in relation to the different types of movable bridge.
Decks
The deck will normally be the principal load carried by the fixed structure,
certainly whilst the bridge is being operated, and often when in use by traffic
as well. It is therefore important that the weight of the deck and its distri-
bution on to the superstructure is understood before assessing the struc-
ture or designing renovation or conservation measures.
Historically the decks of many bascules and swingbridges have been con-
structed from multiple layers of timber planking, as this is a relatively light-
weight material, readily worked to the required shape and capable of being
fixed, to allow the deck to be raised to the vertical. Such decks suffer from
ingress of water and consequential decay so that they need to be recon-
DRAWBRIDGES 269
structed with new timbers from time to time during the life of the structure.
Timber decks can be treated to provide a suitable surface for pedestrians,
and use of modern waterproofing materials can extend the life of the timber.
Use for road traffic requires an appropriate form of treatment, such as
specialist epoxy-coated surfacing panels to provide the necessary skid
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
resistance in a form that will remain secure whilst the bridge is raised.
A wider choice of materials is available for the deck construction and
surfacing of decks that remain horizontal. Capital and operating costs for
the bridge opening mechanism will nevertheless still be related to the
weight of the deck, and the choice of a lightweight solution is normally pref-
erable.
Lightweight orthotropic steel decks (sometimes called battle decks) have
been used for new construction since the 1950s and for refurbishment of
older bridges. However problems can arise requiring eventual refur-
bishment or replacement due to fatigue in weld joints to the underside of
the deck plate. Also, premature cracking can occur in the surfacing over
hard spots formed by stiffeners beneath the flexible deck plate.
DRAWBRIDGES
In a basic drawbridge, the deck is pivoted at one end and rotated towards
the vertical by pulling on the nose of the bridge or at mid-span, using ropes
or cables. A force in excess of the full weight of the deck may be needed
to raise the drawbridge depending on the geometry. The majority of the
force needed can be provided by counterweights, using a relatively small
additional force to control the movement. Nevertheless the supporting
cables or chains must have considerable strength and need to be inspected
at regular intervals. An example of a typical drawbridge across the Grand
Union Canal is given in Fig. 11.8.
In order to reduce the force needed to control the structure, drawbridges
have been developed with independent mechanisms for balancing the deck
weight. The Dutch canal bridges are typical of such bridges, as shown in
Fig. 11.2.
Drawbridges have the advantage that all the operating equipment and
deck superstructure can be located above ground, avoiding the need for
difficult excavations during construction and easing maintenance.
Drawbridges of more significant size are generally controlled by a rack-
and-pinion drive, having the advantage of restraining the deck in both ten-
sion and compression. The drive system not only has to position the deck,
but also has to overcome friction and ‘sticking’ forces, control wind forces,
and cope with a varying geometry as the bridge operates.
Drawbridges require a reasonably stiff superstructure, particularly trans-
versely, to carry wind forces in the raised position without undue distortion.
Also, such bridges are often driven from two sides in normal operation, but
may need to be capable of being driven from one side only in the event of
a breakdown or the need for maintenance work
270 MOVABLE BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Conservation
Drawbridges were common on canals, where they were often of timber con-
struction, but have been subject to decay caused by the damp conditions
and historically poor maintenance. Consequently timber drawbridges are
now becoming rare, often being replaced with steel structures. Many have
had their timber decks replaced by steel.
Small drawbridges, as typically found on canals, have historically been
hand-operated by pulling on a rope attached to the balance arm. Such draw-
bridges were usually of timber construction, and needed to be rebalanced
with the seasons as the moisture content and hence density of the timber
varied. Even if properly balanced, there is a risk that the person using the
bridge may not have sufficient strength to control it, which has on one
occasion resulted in a fatal accident. With increased leisure use on the
canals, many of these bridges are being converted to manual hydraulic or
electrical operation in order to make them easier to operate and reduce the
risk of accidents.
SWINGBRIDGES 271
SWINGBRIDGES
A swingbridge is a structure which is balanced about a single point, either
by having two equal spans or one span (balanced by the addition of ballast
to the shorter span) which rotates in plan through 90°, see Fig. 11.9. Swing-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
a temporary uplift force to the deck to allow the frictional forces to be over-
come.
In some cases the weight of the swingbridge is carried through a central
pintle, with balance wheels to maintain stability. In others, the pintle may
serve only to provide horizontal restraint, with the load being carried
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
through rollers.
An equally diverse range of mechanisms has been employed to move
swingbridges once they have been made free to rotate. Rack-and-pinion
drive systems may involve a fixed rack with the pinion mounted on the
superstructure or a fixed pinion driving the rack on the superstructure,
see Fig. 11.10.
Other swingbridges are moved using wire ropes or chains bearing on or
fixed to a slewing ring and driven by a windlass, Fig. 11.11, or in some cases
by extending hydraulic cylinders acting through a system of pulleys,
Fig. 11.12.
Conservation
As with other types of movable bridge, it is important that the bridge is
correctly balanced, both to minimise the loading on drive systems under
braking, and to ensure the load distribution is maintained as required by
the design.
Swingbridges, in their movable mode of operation have an inherent large
inertial moment, which can apply excessive loading on drive shafts, pinion
gears and ring gear when braking is applied. The total force will be determ-
ined by operational requirements for the bridge, but balancing of the brak-
ing system will help reduce the risk of overloading individual components.
쐌 The original trough decking was removed and replaced with steel
decking, supported on replacement steel plate girders fabricated to
match transverse mild steel beams fitted in the 1920s.
쐌 The pontoons were found to be severely corroded over the top 750 mm
‘splash zone’. The bridge rotated on seventy-six rollers, which were
checked for cracking using gamma rays, and resulted in nineteen
being replaced.
쐌 The bridge was operated by a wire slewing rope of 40 mm diameter,
driven by a capstan through gearing from an electric motor, and this
was restored, but the original ‘variable resistor’ controls were replaced
with modern programmable logic computer systems.
쐌 A sprayed waterproofing system was applied on to the deck plate.
쐌 Closed circuit television and modern traffic management systems
were installed.
used to restore the strength of the cast iron ribs to provide emergency
vehicle access. The original parapets and hand-operated windlass were
retained, but modern deck surfacing replaced the timber block paving. This
bridge has an interesting feature where the parapet leans outward from the
deck. When opened to shipping it has to be folded back, because if left in
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
position it would be proud of the dock wall and liable to impact damage.
Boothferry Bridge is a seven-span structure built c1930 across the River
Ouse in Humberside. It has two swing-spans, having lightweight orthotropic
steel decks. The structure was found to require maintenance in the 1970s
when, among other things, fatigue cracks were discovered in the welds
attaching stiffening ribs to the deck plate. Cantilevered footways on each
side of the carriageway were suffering corrosion of the thin steel supporting
members and exposed reinforcement in the concrete footway slabs. Cor-
rosion has also occurred in riveted steel supports to the hand rails causing
bulging between the rivets. The bridge was repaired and strengthened in
1978. In later work, the old DC machinery was replaced by hydraulic equip-
ment.
Reconstruction
Selby Swingbridge is an example of sympathetic reconstruction. The original
bridge was built c1791 by the eminent eighteenth century engineer William
Jessop. It was reconstructed in 1921 at the time of a major accident. By
1970 it had deteriorated through a combination of old age, heavy traffic
and numerous collisions from shipping. It was the only surviving eighteenth
century timber trestle bridge still carrying trunk road traffic. The swing span
was operated manually with a windlass and could be opened in one minute.
The movement was a notable example of the early use of ball bearings on
a large scale. The specification for the reconstruction required that the spirit
and concept of Jessop’s original design be retained. Where appropriate tim-
ber was to be used for the main structural elements and where possible
original timber was salvaged and reused. Research was carried out in sup-
port of the design: measurements were made of the drag coefficients of the
pile bents in flows of 7 to 8 knots, and wheel load tests were carried out to
determine the strength of the timber deck panels. The reconstructed bridge
is shown in Fig. 11.16.
BASCULE BRIDGES
The word ‘bascule’ derives from the French word for see-saw. Like a see-
saw, bascule bridges rotate and are balanced about a horizontal axis. A
relatively small force is therefore needed to move and control the bridge.
There are two types of bascule bridge, trunnion and rolling, and there is
the Rall bascule, a variant of the rolling bascule, as illustrated in Fig. 11.5.
Trunnion bascule
Trunnion bascule bridges are structures which are balanced about a single
fixed point and are rotated vertically to clear the opening, see for example
BASCULE BRIDGES 277
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
the impact of the bridge leaf as it reaches its maximum limits of opening
and closing.
The main motors do not have to be very big, because the weight of the
bascule span is balanced by the large counterweights. The gears are connec-
ted to the rack assemblies on the bottom of the lift span leaf. The counter-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
weights can be made of concrete and balance the weight of the leaves
extending over the river channel. For bridges located in cold climates
additional weights can be added to the counterweights to offset any added
load on the leaves due to snow or ice accumulation in the winter or con-
struction modifications. The steel structure that makes up each leaf pivots
on two trunnions.
Ensuring an optimum state of balance throughout the operating cycle can
enhance the reliability and life of machinery driving the bascule. At the most
sophisticated level strain gauges can be installed on to driving machinery
to measure torque and hence determine load and friction conditions, as well
as the state of balance throughout the operating cycle. The balance of the
bridge can then be adjusted to achieve optimal balance.
Tower Bridge, London (Fig. 11.17) is an example of a trunnion bascule. In
this case the pinion is fixed, just below deck level and drives on to racks
at either side of the deck and above it.
The bridge comprises two outer suspension spans supported by chains
and the central double-leaf bascule span. The suspension chains are con-
tinuous across the central span, being concealed by the high level walkway.
Contrary to the general impression, the bridge is essentially a mild steel
structure clad in Portland stone.
The bridge was originally operated by water pressure, using steam from
two of four boilers pumped into six hydraulic accumulators, which could
be released at a pressure of 5.1 N/mm2 (750 psi) on demand, with a back-
up connection to the London Hydraulic Company’s main at a similar press-
ure. The steam was used to drive the bascule engines, of which a total of
eight was provided in four engine rooms. Large and small engines catered
for different levels of wind loading and could be linked for a wind on the
scale of the storm that caused the Tay Bridge disaster, at 0.38 N/mm2 (56
psi). Each bascule could be driven from either the upstream or downstream
side of the span, with the other side available for maintenance or standby.
In practice only one engine has ever been used.
Conservation
During the life of Tower Bridge there have been various maintenance
requirements. A recurring problem has been water ingress into the surfacing
over the bascule deck. Swelling of the original timber infill caused the wood
block paving to erupt. Matters were improved by the use of foamed poly-
urethane replacement infill, but eventually the surfacing was replaced with
plywood panels on epoxy mortar with neoprene tiles and epoxy topping.
The major refurbishment works to the movable elements of the bridge
have been centred on the replacement of machinery. Operating costs were
high due to the number of staff needed and lack of standardisation, requiring
most spares to be purpose made. In the mid 1970s the bascule engines were
replaced by hydraulic motors driven from a hydraulic power pack with two
BASCULE BRIDGES 279
Rolling bascules
Rolling bascules were first built by the Scherzer Rolling Bridge Company
and are often referred to as ‘Scherzer’ bascules. Rolling bascules addressed
the shortcomings of the trunnion bascule, particularly in dock locations, in
not providing adequate clearance at the dock edge and requiring significant
abutment works below deck level, see Fig. 11.18.
The deck is connected to the counterweight by a quadrant girder. Actuat-
ing arms are attached at the centroid of the structure and pull the structure
into the open position. As the bridge opens it rolls on and is guided by the
toothed track girders, so that the leaf also moves away from the opening.
As with the trunnion bascule, the rack may be attached to the leaf of the
bridge with a fixed pinion, or the pinion may be attached to the leaf engaging
with a fixed rack.
Poole Harbour Bridge is an example of a double-leaf rolling bascule bridge,
as shown in Fig. 11.18. It was constructed in 1927 and strengthened in 1995
to carry 37.5 units of HB loading. Other than this the structure has remained
in substantially original condition.
Conservation
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
With a rolling bascule the full weight of the structure, including counter-
weights, is transferred from the segmental girder along a single line of action
into the track girder. As the bridge operates the point of contact moves
along the segmental girder and is guided by a series of teeth and holes,
which also serve to resist longitudinal forces. Typically the load is trans-
ferred from the web of the segmental girder on to the track plate in bearing,
but the track plate will be held in place by angles, which also transfer longi-
tudinal shear. During operation of the bridge, flexure of the track plate rela-
tive to the webs results in bending at the root of the restraining angles.
This effect will be made worse if there is any detritus on the track or any
misalignment of teeth.
Circumferential cracking along the connection between the track and web
plates is a common defect in such bridges and attempts to repair the angle
by welding have proved only partially successful. The track plate can also
deteriorate under the effect of the full weight of the bridge being transferred
as a highly concentrated line load across the track girder. This causes crack-
ing and wear to rear surfaces and cracks emanating from the corners of
holes to locate the teeth in the rolling plate.
Many rolling bascule bridges have had their track plates repaired or
replaced one or more times during their life, and these components must
be treated as mechanical elements requiring regular maintenance and per-
iodic replacement.
Repairs to rolling bascule bridges usually represent a major undertaking.
If carried out in situ, the bridge will often have to remain operational, at
least to river traffic, but repairs to track girders cannot easily be undertaken
on a piecemeal basis. One solution adopted has been to remove the bridge
by pontoon to a remote location. This is exemplified by the conservation
of Duke Street Bridge, Birkenhead, which is one of a family of rolling bascule
bridges designed and constructed by Sir William Arrol around the Liverpool
and Birkenhead docks during the 1930s, see Fig. 11.19. General deterioration
of the bridge had resulted in heavy corrosion of members and fatigue crack-
ing of the rolling path components in relation to the movable elements. Of
particular concern was circumferential cracking affecting the transfer of
load between the webs and track plates around the quadrant girder, which
was attributed to lack of maintenance generally, but more particularly to
ship impact giving rise to mismeshing of the teeth and sockets used to guide
the bridge.
It had already been established that the deck would need to be replaced
with a shallower form of construction, due to its poor condition, the need
to strengthen it to meet current loading requirements, and the need to keep
the bottom flange out of the water (whose level had been raised for oper-
ational reasons). The operation of bascule bridges requires that the centroid
of the movable structure is coincident with the point of attachment of the
actuating arm (the gudgeon pin, see Fig. 11.20). Thus changes arising from
replacement of the deck would require compensating changes to the ballast.
BASCULE BRIDGES 281
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
It had further been established that the waterway would need to remain
open to shipping throughout works, but that it would be impractical either
to undertake repairs with the bridge in a vertical position, or to carry out
repairs such that the bridge could be opened at short notice. Complete
replacement of the structure was considered.
282 MOVABLE BRIDGES
Overall it was deemed more economic to replace both the quadrant girder
and ballast box, rather than repair them. This saved 110 tonne of steelwork
and allowed the existing track girders and actuating arms to be retained.
The bridge was floated by barge to an adjacent dock where repairs could
be undertaken on land.
The critical element of this type of movable bridge is the track plate,
which has to be accurately fitted around the quadrant girder. Rolling, mach-
ining and fitting the bearing plate (750 ⫻ 110 mm thick) requires skills and
equipment not necessarily available to all steel fabricators.
Extended life may be achieved for a bascule structure by the use of mod-
ern monitoring techniques that can be remotely accessed. Continuous moni-
toring of strain gauges and inclinometers can provide base data during nor-
mal operation of the bridge, against which abnormal operation or ongoing
deterioration can be monitored. Funds for maintenance can consequently
be better targeted and planned with less disruption to users.
The Mitchigan Street Lift Bridge c1930 crosses Sturgeon Bay, Wisconsin,
USA. It is a double-leaf rolling bascule, which is opened on average ten times
a day. Problems were first identified during routine inspection when move-
ment of the rolling plate was noted where it was attached to the web of the
quadrant girder through an angle. Specialist inspection found that all rivets
connecting the rolling plate to the connection angle had failed, with only
corrosion keeping the rolling plate in place at several locations. Circumfer-
ential crackling was also found at the root of the connecting angle and in
previous repair welds connecting the angle to both the rolling plate and
quadrant girder web. Cracking was also found in the rolling plate emanating
from the track teeth sockets.
When the rolling plate was removed for repair, the cracking was found to
be more extensive than anticipated. It was not feasible to fabricate new cast
steel track plates within the time available for bridge closure, and so exten-
sive weld repairs were undertaken. However, in two locations fully satisfac-
tory repairs could not be achieved and so a strain gauging system was fitted
to allow continuous monitoring of the cracks. The system proved successful
in that it enabled the continuing operation of the bridge and deterioration
of the rolling plate to be monitored.
Three Rall bascule bridges are still in existence in the USA. The biggest
is Broadway Bridge in Portland Oregon, constructed in 1912. It is a double
leaf structure, each leaf being 42.5 m long and weighing around 2,000 tonne.
It is not popular with motorists as opening takes 20 min and longer.
Conservation
In common with other types of movable bridge, the force required to raise
the bridge is small compared to the weight of the structure, having to over-
come frictional forces and the unbalanced element of the load. If equal ten-
sion (and hence extension) is not maintained within the lifting cables,
cocking of the span can result during lifting. This in turn results in uneven
loading of the mechanical system, increased frictional forces and reduced
lives of the mechanical components.
284 MOVABLE BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
286
MOVABLE BRIDGES
and drum
Fig. 11.25 Drive shaft
Fig. 11.24 Pulley wheel
TRANSPORTER BRIDGES 287
a wire rope is bent around a pulley wheel, there is a loss of effective strength
due to the inability of the individual strands and wires to adjust themselves
entirely to their changed position. Tests show that rope efficiency decreases
to a marked degree as the wheel diameter is reduced with respect to the
diameter of the rope.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Although the sizes of the pulley wheels are determined in the original
design, these factors may need to be considered during conservation work
if any changes have to be made, for example fitting stronger ropes to carry
heavier loads. Also, it may be required to improve serviceability by re-
optimising the relative sizes of the pulley wheels and rope.
TRANSPORTER BRIDGES
Transporter bridges have a high level fixed structure above the clearance
required for shipping. A carriage arrangement can be pulled across the
structure and from this is suspended a gondola which can carry a relatively
small number of vehicles and pedestrians. Only four bridges of this type
have been built in Britain, of which three remain; at Newport, Gwent,
Middlesborough on Teeside and Warrington across the River Mersey. The
fourth, at Runcorn, was replaced by the Runcorn–Widnes Road Bridge which
opened in 1961.
Newport Transporter Bridge has a 4 m deep boom supported from main
suspension cables. The purpose of the boom is to distribute loads uniformly
on to the suspension cable. The boom is a pin-jointed arrangement with sets
of overlapping diagonal bracing cables. The main suspension cables are anch-
ored at ground level some 137 m back from the towers. Secondary cables
anchor the boom. The span between towers (centre to centre) is 196 m.
Middlesborough Transporter Bridge has two deep cantilevered trusses
which meet in the middle of the main span. The main cantilevers (85 m
each) are balanced by shorter (43 m) end spans which are anchored at their
end to the ground by vertical steel cables. The clear span between the tow-
ers is 172 m.
Warrington Transporter Bridge is a smaller structure having a clear span
of 61 m, Fig. 11.26. It is privately owned and not open to the public.
Conservation
The transporter bridges at Newport and Middlesborough have received sub-
stantial conservation in recent years, and are now operated on a daily basis.
Some of the problems encountered are relevant to other structures:
쐌 Original cables, comprising many small (5 mm) wires spirally wound,
were found to be of inferior quality to even the most basic grades of
wire in use today, but having strengths in excess of that specified at
the time.
쐌 Cables removed from the bridges were found to contain both corroded
and broken wires and evidence of fatigue damage. The latter was attri-
buted to the sensitivity of fatigue strength to environmental and pro-
cessing defects.
쐌 The double braced boom structure at Newport proved to be both an
advantage and a disadvantage. The resulting high level of structural inde-
terminacy allowed individual members to be replaced with little need for
temporary works, but control of structural stiffness, as affected by reten-
sioning of bracing, could only be tackled in an empirical manner.
쐌 Very little remained within the cables of the specified lubricant and cor-
rosion protection. In consequence individual wires exhibited surface
corrosion and pitting and the centres of cables were found to be packed
with rust.
The charming Edwardian gondola of Newport bridge is shown in mid-flight
in Fig. 11.27.
The transporter bridge at Warrington (built in 1915) has been enhanced
RETRACTABLE BRIDGES
Retractable bridges are rather rare and usually small structures of limited
span for pedestrians. It is necessary to have large counterweights to balance
the movable part during operation. The movement is linear with wheels
running on guide rails.
Conservation
The retractable footbridge across the entrance to one of the St Katherine
Docks in London was designed by Thomas Telford and constructed in 1829,
see Fig. 11.28. The bridge is in two halves, each half having heavy counter-
balance boxes containing iron ingots. It was retired from service after 165
years when it was considered inadequate to carry more intensive pedestrian
loading attracted by redevelopment of the docks. The two halves were cle-
aned, painted and repositioned nearby with an explanatory notice. This is
an example of preservation rather than conservation, as the bridge is on
exhibition but no longer in use.
In contrast to the Telford Footbridge, Shoreham Harbour Footbridge has
been retained in service, see Fig. 11.29. The movable section is single-sided
across the navigation channel and is part of the thirteen-span concrete
structure. It is composed of a steel truss which runs on guide rails and the
movement is driven by an electric motor. The opening is approximately 14
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE
The actions and strategies available for managing movable bridges can be
categorised as:
쐌 Conservation including
Inspection
Maintenance
Enhancement
쐌 Rehabilitation
Reconstruction
Conversion (to fixed bridge)
쐌 Replacement
Inspection
Inspection of movable bridges involves work similar to that required for fixed
bridges plus the additional requirements of the machinery and moving parts.
The intervals between inspections must be shorter, depending on the type of
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Maintenance
Maintenance, like inspection, requires a wider range of knowledge and skills
than for fixed bridges. The main activities are summarised in Table 11.2.
Enhancement
Enhancement of fixed bridges is generally concerned with raising the load
carrying capacity or widening the structure. Enhancement of movable
bridges can be targeted at one or more of three objectives.
arily affect the bridge in its static, open to traffic, configuration. Strengthen-
ing techniques will be those appropriate to the form of construction as dis-
cussed elsewhere. Provided strengthening can be achieved without adding
significantly to the weight of a structure, and measures are taken to ensure
the distribution of load on to supports whilst opening remains similar, the
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
driving system for the bridge should not necessarily require improvement.
However, the opportunity would normally be taken to modernise it if this
had not already been done.
In some circumstances, the traffic-carrying capacity can be impaired by
loading imposed by the bridge operating machinery and the space it occu-
pies. Relocation of equipment, or use of alternative lighter weight equipment
may free up capacity for increased traffic loadings without having to resort
to structural strengthening.
A problem with lift bridges has been to ensure that the span rises evenly
on both sides. One solution adopted has been to locate the driving machin-
ery in the centre of the span, so that both sides can be driven off a single
winch. Modern control techniques can now be installed that allow two or
more drives to be controlled to achieve equal rates of lift, and the machinery
to be located at the ends of the span or as part of the towers.
As an equivalent measure to ‘strengthening’ the structural members of a
movable bridge, it may be necessary or desirable to enhance the operational
capacity of the bridge. On busy routes subject to frequent opening, the
capacity of the route over the bridge will be affected by the cycle time. An
unusual example of this is the Duluth Aerial Lift Bridge in Minnesota, USA
which was originally a transporter bridge (one crossing every five minutes),
but was later converted to a lift bridge allowing continuous traffic when
closed to shipping.
To a much greater extent than fixed bridges, movable bridges are subject
to mechanical wear and tear. Improvements to the operating machinery are
a means of enhancing the reliability and reducing the amount of routine
maintenance. Methods of enhancement are summarised in Table 11.3.
Enhancement Method
load carrying capacity lightweight steel structure. This has the advantage of
minimising knock-on effects on the counter-balance. It
has the disadvantage of loss of originality and for a
listed bridge it would be unpopular with heritage
authorities. The Telford cast iron retractable
footbridge in St Katherine’s Dock, London, was
replaced by a new structure having higher load-
carrying capacity. The original structures was cleaned
and laid out on the adjacent land as a museum piece.
Convert from manual Small movable bridges on canals and waterways used
operation for leisure activities may be converted from manual
operation to manual hydraulic or motorised electrical
operation. This has the advantage of added
convenience and safety. The disadvantage is loss of
originality.
but could also be more substantial, such as the removal of ballast boxes
on bascule bridges. In such cases conservation is clearly not an overriding
consideration. There are numerous movable bridges that have been con-
verted to fixed structures, some examples are given in Table 11.4.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Reconstruction
Reconstruction involves replacement of much of the original structure and
is a last resort which would not be appropriate to bridges having historic
merit. For working bridges seen as having little merit, such as many of the
canal bridges, it is not unusual for them to have been reconstructed several
times since the canal was first opened. For example, Zebon Copse Swing
Bridge on the Basingstoke Canal was reconstructed in 1954 following col-
lapse, and in 1993 for upgrading. As the original swingbridge was probably
built at the same time as other bridges on the canal, around 1792, it is likely
that Zebon Copse Bridge would have been reconstructed at least once
before 1954. The original brick abutments have been retained so that the
latest version is compatible with the environment, see Fig. 11.30.
Reconstruction may be considered to be necessary because the structure
has deteriorated to the extent that it is not feasible or economic to carry
out repairs, or it may be required to have an enhanced performance which
cannot be obtained otherwise.
Reconstruction need not necessarily be a total disaster in a conservation
296 MOVABLE BRIDGES
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Method Comment
Remove and preserve Only practical for small bridges and footbridges.
major components Carried out successfully on Telford’s footbridge, St
Katherine Dock, London and Tipton Vertical Lift
Bridge (re-erected in the Black Country Museum,
Dudley).
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Prine, D. (1996) Remote Monitoring of the Michigan Street Lift Bridge, Sturgeon Bay,
Wisconsin, North Western University, ITI Report 19.
O’Dowd, T. (1995) Investigation and Reconstruction of Duke Street Bascule Bridge, Con-
struction Repair March/April.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Concrete
ABBREVIATIONS
SSSI Site of Special Scientific Interests
ASR Alkali Silica Reaction
PFA Pulverised Fuel Ash
GLOSSARY
Mass concrete Concrete having no reinforcement.
Reinforced concrete Concrete reinforced with steel bars. This
is distinct from iron frames clad in
concrete.
Prestressed concrete A generic term used loosely to refer to
several systems where the concrete is
held in compression by stressed steel.
Precast prestressed concrete Concrete cast in moulds having
pretensioned steel, usually prepared in
factory conditions.
Internal post-tensioned Precast concrete post-tensioned by steel
concrete pushed through internal ducts,
tensioned and locked off. The ducts are
usually filled with grout under pressure.
External post-tensioned Precast concrete post-tensioned by steel
concrete external to the concrete section.
Strand A group of wires spun in a helical form
around a longitudinal axis formed by a
King wire. Common types are 7-wire and
19-wire.
300 CONCRETE
bar or strand.
Segmental construction Longitudinal beams cast in separate
lengths (segments) and post-tensioned
to form a continuous element, can be
precast or cast in situ.
Alkali silica reaction A chemical reaction in hardened
concrete which can cause expansion,
cracking and exudation of a gel.
Pulverised fuel ash A pozzolanic material used as a partial
replacement for Portland cement.
BACKGROUND
Concrete bridges were first built in the late 1800s and there are now many
early examples that are up to 100 years old and in continued use. Some
have been heritage listed and others have historic significance and should
be treated as having similar status.
As a material, concrete has been steadily developed to have improved
properties such as higher strength, faster curing times, lower permeability,
etc. In consequence, attention tends to be focussed on latest developments
and concrete continues to be regarded as a relatively modern material. Less
attention is paid to early concrete and its characteristics are less well
known.
Initially concrete was introduced as cladding to improve the fire resist-
ance of iron and steel frames. It was also used to provide corrosion protec-
tion. The structural attributes of concrete were quickly recognised and
bridges were designed in mass concrete, reinforced concrete and in later
years, prestressed concrete. The structural forms of in situ concrete were
developed from mass concrete arches to open spandrel arches, beam-and-
slabs, etc. The common forms of structure are summarised in Table 12.1.
When carrying out conservation work, it is necessary to be aware of the
different systems of reinforcement used in the early years of concrete, for
example Hennébique, Coignet and Considère, of which Hennébique was
most commonly used in Britain. Also there were various types of reinforce-
ment bar having different profiles and strengths supplied by companies
such as the Trussed Concrete Steel Company, Indented Bar and Concrete
Engineering Company, the Perfector system, and others (detailed in The
Engineers’ Year Book of 1923). The properties and characteristics of these
systems are factors that have to be taken into account when assessing load
carrying capacities to current standards.
Prestressed concrete was introduced in Europe in the 1930s and a little
later in Britain. Bridges having precast prestressed beams with in situ decks
quickly became popular as being an economic and convenient form of con-
struction. Post-tensioned concrete was developed using various stressing
BACKGROUND 301
systems, for example Freyssinet, Magnel Blaton, Gifford-Udall, etc. (see And-
rew and Turner, 1985). An early example of post-tensioning is Waterloo
Bridge, London, see Fig. 12.1. Construction began in 1937 and was completed
in 1944. The structure is basically reinforced concrete having prestress
applied in certain areas to enhance its shear capacity. The bars were
BACKGROUND 303
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Performance of concrete
The early bridges were constructed with materials and detailing now
regarded as having poor durability. Moreover, loading requirements were
304 CONCRETE
much lower and many of the bridges have had to be strengthened to meet
current standards. The concrete had higher water/cement ratios and thick-
nesses of cover were low, see Fig. 12.2. In consequence of these shortfalls,
carbonation depths have developed over 50 or more years of service to the
point where they now exceed the cover thickness in many cases so that
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
rated bridge were load tested to collapse by TRL. The load tests were car-
ried out on a cross-beam, deck slab and two main beams. Calculated failure
loads, prior to the tests, predicted that the cross-beam would fail at 760 kN
(failed at 2,530 kN), the deck would fail at 470 kN (failed at 2,910 kN) and
the main beams would fail at 1,130 kN (loaded respectively to 5,180 kN and
5,310 kN, but not failed).
In the past, many reinforced bridges have been unnecessarily replaced
due to shortfalls in their assessed strength but, unlike Dornie, exhibiting no
signs of distress.
In contrast to the problems of reinforced concrete, mass concrete bridges
such as Axmouth Bridge in Devon have benefited from having no reinforce-
ment to corrode, see Fig. 12.3.
Precast, prestressed beams are a popular form of construction available
in standard sections since the late 1940s. These include the WR beam intro-
duced in 1948, the SBB beam at about the same time and still in production,
and the inverted T-beam in 1951, also still in production. Outlines of the
cross-sections of these beams are given in Table 12.1.
Precast, prestressed beams have performed well over a period of up to
50 years and there have been no serious problems. When in 1989, a survey
of the condition of 200 concrete bridges was carried out for the Department
of Transport (Wallbank, 1989), no problems or signs of distress were
reported for the prestressed beams in seventy-four bridges of that type.
The excellent durability of prestressed beams is almost certainly due to a
combination of factors: high quality control exerted in the factory con-
Replace defective Can be carried out like- The work can cause
components for-like, so that there is disruption to traffic
no change in the unless temporary
appearance. measures are taken
Replacements can be such as propping.
made stronger and Heritage authorities are
more durable than sometimes reluctant to
originals. agree replacement of
original material.
Expensive.
Crack sealing
On occasions when concrete has become cracked, it may be appropriate to
seal the cracks with a low viscosity resinous sealant. The main purpose is
to prevent the entry of water that could lead to frost damage to the surface
CONSERVATION OF MASS AND REINFORCED CONCRETE 309
Penetrant coatings
The actions of penetrant coatings are briefly described in Chapter 7 in
relation to masonry, where they can be used to halt the processes of deterio-
ration and erosion. Concrete presents a somewhat different proposition as
it is generally stronger and less permeable than stonework. The coatings
can be designed to strengthen (consolidate) weak material or act as water
repellents (hydrophobes), the latter are relevant to concrete. There are
many types of penetrant coatings and their effectiveness is yet to be fully
established.
The requirement of a concrete coating is to be hydrophobic and prevent
ingress of water and soluble contaminants such as chlorides. Hydrophobic
coatings permit moisture to escape so that the concrete can dry out and
cause corrosion activity to slow down or stop altogether. Such coatings may
therefore be effective in cases when corrosion of the reinforcing steel and
deterioration of the concrete has not advanced to the stage when it is neces-
sary to replace the cover concrete. Hydrophobic coatings, such as silanes,
are applied to new concrete structures, repaired structures and existing
structures, where there are no significant levels of chloride contamination.
Penetrant coatings need not affect appearance of the concrete as they
are usually colourless. However, experience on stone indicates that they
deteriorate after about 15 years and retreatment is required. Application to
concrete is fairly recent and a method of determining when to re-treat has
not yet been faced, let alone standardised. Likewise, the problems of re-
treatment have not been assessed.
Corrosion inhibitors
Corrosion inhibitors have been widely used to protect steelwork and, less
commonly, to protect steel in concrete. They can be applied to surfaces of
existing concrete or used as admixtures in the concrete mix.
When applied to an existing structure, the inhibitor must diffuse through
the concrete to the level of the reinforcement in order to be effective. With
liquid inhibitors this can take some time as diffusion of vapour phase inhibi-
tors is more rapid through dry concrete. There are three main types of
inhibitors: anodic inhibitors, cathodic inhibitors and multifunctional inhibi-
tors.
310 CONCRETE
vation level (i.e. chloride/nitrite ratio) at which point the inhibitor must be
reapplied or corrosion will recommence.
Cathodic inhibitors retard the reaction of the cathode. Benzoates, parti-
cularly sodium benzoate, are the most effective cathodic inhibitors and have
the advantage that they are not consumed with time. However, inhibition
takes longer to establish and the compressive strength of the concrete is
reduced.
Both anodic and cathodic inhibitors therefore have disadvantages and
multifunctional inhibitors have been used to combine the benefits of both
anodic and cathodic inhibitors. Multifunctional inhibitors are based on
amino alcohol.
It should be noted that researchers are divided on the effectiveness of
corrosion inhibitors and it has even been suggested that they can worsen
the situation, although this is an extreme view. However, when applied as
admixtures in the concrete mix, they appear to be reasonably effective.
Paint
Paint is sometimes applied as a cosmetic to concrete that has defects or
unsightly repairs. An example of a well-painted bridge that has remained in
good condition after several years is given in Fig. 12.4. Paint can impart a
bright and shining finish that is not compatible with old concrete and will
eventually degrade under the UV content of sunlight. Its ability to deform
and bridge cracks is limited to tolerable widths so that cracks can reflect
through the coating and produce an unsightly effect. Unsightly biological
growth can develop on shaded areas. Vandalism and graffiti are likely to
occur on all types of structure, but tend to look worse on clean and bright,
painted surfaces. Biological growth and graffiti are relatively easy to clean
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
ides must be removed from the corrosion pits. If this is not done properly,
corrosion is likely to recur and the repair material will be forced off in a
short time. There are occasions when it may be appropriate to remove
chlorides by electrochemical methods, as mentioned later in this chapter.
Repair materials are commonly flowable mortars that are trowelled or
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
cast in place. These materials often provide a poor colour match giving an
ugly appearance as exemplified by Fig. 12.6. Moreover, if the underlying
cause of the problem is not correctly identified, the repair concrete may
crack as before.
As an example of patch repairs, an open spandrel arch bridge across the
River Fnjöska in Iceland, constructed at the beginning of the century, has
special historic significance as being the first reinforced concrete arch in
the country. By the early 1990s, its surface concrete had deteriorated and
reinforcement bars were corroding. It was therefore necessary to replace
defective concrete with material that matched the weathered appearance
of the bridge. A mortar was formulated containing Portland cement, polymer
fibres and microsilica. A polymer-modified additive mixed with local sand
produced the required colour, texture and physical properties. The defec-
tive concrete was removed and the reinforcement cleaned to expose bright
steel. A protective coating was applied to the reinforcement and the new
mortar placed in thicknesses up to 75 mm.
King George VI Bridge, Aberdeen, Scotland, is a three-span granite-faced
reinforced concrete arch bridge across the River Dee, constructed in 1941.
By the late 1980s, carbonation had developed in the concrete soffits, the
reinforcement was corroding and concrete was cracking and spalling. Patch
repairs were carried out by removing defective concrete, cleaning the
reinforcement and applying an acrylic mortar. To minimise the risk of
further deterioration, an anti-carbonation coating was applied to the soffits.
Patch repairs to the landmark Dumbarton Bridge across Rock Creek Park-
way in Washington, USA are shown in Figs 12.7 and 12.8 in progress and
afterwards.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Sprayed repairs
Sprayed repairs are a variation on patch repairs. Whereas with a patch
repair the material is trowelled or cast in place, sprayed concrete is forcibly
projected into place, see Fig. 12.9. Spraying is rather less precise than patch-
ing and is typically used only on high volume repairs where the depth to
be filled, and particularly the area to be covered, are large.
There are two common materials used in sprayed repairs: concretes and
mortars (i.e. a concrete with no coarse aggregate). These are ‘shotcrete’
and ‘gunite’, respectively. The terms are used rather loosely and to avoid
misunderstandings (here and in Chapter 7) mortar spraying is referred to
in relation to conservation and concrete spraying for strengthening. The
material can be applied using wet process spraying or dry process spraying.
In wet process spraying, a pumpable mix is forced under pressure through
a nozzle on the end of a hose and the rate of placing is dependent on the
rate of delivery from the batching plant.
In dry process spraying, the repair material is dry-batched and mixed in
a conventional plant. Water is added at the nozzle by the operator who can
adjust the rate at which it is added and so control the consistency of the
mix to maximise adhesion, and minimise rebound or slumping after spray-
ing. Typical strengths that can be achieved with dry process spraying are
comparable with those of a good quality in situ concrete, but because the
water is added on site, the final mix is prone to be more variable than with
wet process spraying which uses a uniformly consistent mix.
Whichever process or material is used the existing substrate should be
dry and precautions observed regarding preparation of any exposed
reinforcement as for patch repairs. If there is little or no original reinforce-
ment exposed, it will be necessary to reinforce the repair with secondary
reinforcement, either in the form of lightweight mesh or reinforcement bars
fixed to the substrate. This strengthens the repair, and the mechanical inter-
lock helps with adhesion and reduces slump. However, care must be taken
when spraying to avoid the so-called ‘shadow effect’ where voids are left
CONSERVATION OF MASS AND REINFORCED CONCRETE 315
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
behind the reinforcement as viewed from the nozzle. In both the wet process
and the dry process the skill of the operator is crucial to a good result.
Sprayed repairs to concrete have been used on many occasions, for
example Shoreham Harbour Footbridge was gunited after about 50 years in
service and has remained in good condition for a further 30 years, see
Fig. 12.10.
Salginatobel Bridge, Switzerland, designed by Maillart and constructed in
1930, is listed as an International Historic Civil Engineering Landmark. When
defective cover had to be replaced, conservation issues and retention of the
character of the concrete were foremost in the requirements. Surface con-
crete was removed by high pressure water jets to a depth of 10 to 20 mm
from most of the visible areas and replaced by at least 30 mm of shotcrete
to ensure adequate thickness of cover. The replacement material was
applied by spraying and applying shuttering to the fresh material to provide
a surface finish that was compatible with the rest of the bridge.
with in situ concrete, and precast cantilever brackets were installed to sup-
port the footways on either side of the bridge. The work was completed
in 1995.
Baltimore Street Bridge across Gwynns Falls in Baltimore, USA is a three-
span open spandrel arch structure constructed in 1932. Inspections
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
revealed that the deck was below the strength required for modern traffic
and the concrete was badly deteriorated having high chloride levels, crack-
ing and exposed reinforcement. The bridge was treated as a historic struc-
ture so the repair work had to meet the approval of the State Historic Preser-
vation Office (SHPO). The structure above the extrados of the arch ribs was
replaced to the requirements of the SHPO, namely the elevation viewed from
below remained unchanged, unsightly patch repairs were to be avoided
where possible, and the in situ concrete was to have a uniform appearance
and texture. The work was completed in 1999.
Pedestrianise
When concrete bridges are found to have inadequate load-carrying capacity
they are usually strengthened by one of the methods described in a later
section of this chapter. However, bridges having historical significance,
where heritage authorities would be reluctant to permit such changes, are
sometimes downgraded from vehicular traffic to pedestrians. Examples
include Axmouth Bridge in Devon, Fig. 12.3, which was by-passed by a new
bridge and Homersfield Bridge, in Suffolk, Fig. 4.12, which became part of a
bridleway following construction of a by-pass in 1971.
318 CONCRETE
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Regrouting
During inspections, significant voids are occasionally discovered in the
ducts. The voids may be relatively small or they may extend for most of
the length of the duct. On occasions when the exposed strands have cor-
roded and fractured it is necessary to investigate whether the problem is
widespread in which case it is likely to be necessary to replace the deck
altogether. On occasions when the exposed strands are only lightly cor-
roded, or free of corrosion altogether, it is necessary to decide on an appro-
priate strategy, the alternatives being to let well alone, take no immediate
CONSERVATION OF PRESTRESSED CONCRETE 319
action but monitor behaviour, or regrout. The decision must of course take
account of the sensitivity of the design to loss of prestress and likelihood
of collapse.
Monitoring has been carried out successfully on a number of occasions
and is discussed further in the section on ‘Management practice’.
Regrouting is a difficult operation which has been carried out on a number
of occasions sometimes using vacuum assistance. To be successful it is
necessary to identify the locations and sizes of all the voids beforehand.
The quantities of grout injected into the voids should be measured and
checked against the estimated requirements. To date, there is limited experi-
ence of regrouting and its efficacy remains to be established.
Bonded plating
The method of bonded plating is described later in the section on strength-
ening.
Some of the early bridges having prestressed longitudinal beams were
post-tensioned transversely to ensure adequate distribution of the wheel
320 CONCRETE
loads. In designs not having in situ slabs cast on to beams, surfacing was
laid directly on to the top flanges, so that there was a potential route for
leakage between the beams. In bridges constructed to this design, the trans-
verse prestressing steel is susceptible to corrosion and fracture. In some of
these cases it has been possible, by load testing, to demonstrate that there
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Cathodic protection
When reinforcement corrodes, it acts as an anode in an electrochemical cell.
Metal ions pass into solution as positively charged hydrated ions and the
excess electrons flow through the metal to cathodic sites where electron
acceptors can consume them. The principle of cathodic protection is to
make the reinforcement cathodic, so that corrosion cannot occur.
There are two types of cathodic protection systems available: those using
sacrificial anodes, and those using impressed current systems. Both tech-
niques require only the repair of spalled or delaminated concrete, as adjac-
ent undamaged concrete does not need to be replaced, even if heavily con-
taminated with chlorides. Sacrificial anodes are less effective for use with
reinforced concrete.
For cathodic protection using an impressed current, an anode can be
embedded or attached to the surface of the concrete and a constant voltage
is applied between this and the reinforcement, which acts at the cathode.
The cathodic reaction produces hydroxyl ions that increase the alkalinity
of the concrete surrounding the cathode. Negatively charged ions are
repelled by the cathode and migrate to the anode at the surface of the con-
crete. Impressed current cathodic protection has quite a long history, hav-
ing been used on concrete bridge decks in the USA for many years.
The anode can take a variety of different forms. Conductive coatings
applied to the surface, such as carbon-based paints, have been used but
early versions tended to suffer from poor durability and premature failure,
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
due to flaking and peeling, although they are relatively cheap to install and
easy to repair. Some coatings have the added advantage that they provide
a waterproof barrier as well. Sprayed zinc coatings have been used in marine
environments in the USA for some time, though zinc is toxic and its use
raises environmental concerns.
A conductive mesh, sometimes coated with a conductive polymer or
plated with platinum, and embedded in a layer of cast concrete (on a hori-
zontal surface) or sprayed layer of concrete (on vertical surfaces or soffits)
is another common form of anode. Materials used for the mesh include cop-
per-, titanium- and carbon-based materials.
Because concrete is a variable material and chloride levels and rates of
corrosion will not necessarily be constant for all parts of a structure, larger
structures are usually divided into zones. Each zone requires a separate
power supply and associated monitoring and control system to regulate the
applied voltage. This increases both the capital and maintenance costs of
the system.
Even within a zone, local differences in potential between the anode and
cathode mean that the applied voltage, which has to be large enough to
stop corrosion at the most vigorous anode, will be larger than required for
the other anodes in the zone. This overprotection can lead to the production
of hydrogen at the cathode and in practice some hydrogen production has
to be accepted. This is of little consequence for a reinforced concrete sec-
tion, but due to the fear of the possibility of hydrogen embrittlement of
prestressing steel, this technique is rarely used on prestressed structures.
In most applications, the installation of anodes changes the appearance
of the concrete and may leave unsightly patches. A solution to this problem
is to paint the concrete as for the historic Thorverton Bridge, see Fig. 12.12.
Re-alkalisation
The reaction in cathodic protection is the basis of the patented technique
of re-alkalisation, used to restore the alkalinity of carbonated concrete. In
this technique, the reinforcement is connected as a cathode to a voltage
source. A temporary anode is brought into contact with the surface of the
concrete via an electrolyte, usually sodium carbonate. Under the impressed
current, the cathodic reaction generates highly alkaline hydroxyl ions from
oxygen and water. The hydroxyl ions repassivate the surface of the
reinforcement. As with cathodic protection, several different types of anode
may be used including steel mesh, titanium mesh (which is more resistant
to corrosion) and electrolyte baths (for use on slab structures). Steel is
more practical for re-alkalisation because the process is of shorter duration
than chloride removal and less likely to consume significant quantities of
the anode.
The voltages used in re-alkalisation are much greater than those used for
cathodic protection being typically in the range 20 to 50 V, to give a current
ELECTROCHEMICAL METHODS FOR TREATING CORROSION 323
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
density of 0.3 to 1.5 A/m2. There is greater evolution of hydrogen and re-
alkalisation is therefore unsuitable for prestressed structures.
Re-alkalisation usually takes between 3 and 6 days. It is claimed that the
use of sodium carbonate as an electrolyte renders the concrete more resist-
ant to further carbonation. Conversely it is claimed the highly alkaline
sodium ions may trigger ASR in susceptible structures, and in these circum-
stances plain water may be preferred as the electrolyte. Re-alkalised con-
crete is said to be extra-resistive to carbonation, but it remains for this to
be confirmed by years of experience and weathering in service.
Chloride removal
Also called desalination, this process is essentially the same as re-alkalisa-
tion except that water is used as the electrolyte. Negative chloride ions are
attracted to an externally applied temporary anode and are thus removed
from the concrete. Anodes are of the same form as used for re-alkalisation,
namely mesh or liquid bath systems though desalination usually takes sev-
eral weeks, rather than the several days typical of re-alkalisation. The desali-
nation process can have the effect of increasing the permeability of the con-
crete and to offset this the surface may require impregnating with a suitable
material applied after treatment.
The process can take 4 to 6 weeks to complete, but by no means all of
the chlorides are removed. Concrete in the vicinity of the reinforcement is
usually free of chlorides but further away, particularly behind the bars, the
process is less effective. Typically, 50 to 90% of chlorides are removed over-
all.
With chloride removal, as with re-alkalisation, less than about 10 mm of
cover can result in the reinforcement becoming an anode and preferentially
324 CONCRETE
STRENGTHENING
Strengthening is most commonly required as a consequence of increased
permissible vehicle weights and in cases when the structure has deterio-
rated to the extent that it has become weakened. Less commonly, mistakes
made in design or construction may have to be rectified, but these are usu-
ally identified fairly soon after construction. Before strengthening is seri-
ously investigated, advanced methods of structural analysis should be car-
ried out to determine whether the bridge is indeed understrength. Methods
of strengthening are described in the following sections and summarised in
Table 12.5.
rying out load tests, in which case the Institution of Civil Engineers’ Guide-
lines on Supplementary Load Testing (1998) should be followed.
Added reinforcement
There are occasions when strengthening can be affected by adding reinforc-
ing bars to the existing structure, for example to increase shear resistance.
The bars can be installed in slots cut parallel to the concrete surface or
holes drilled perpendicular to the surface. Added reinforcement is often car-
ried out as part of a larger package of refurbishment work.
Old Bedford Bridge, Norfolk, is a three-span reinforced concrete beam-
and-slab structure constructed in 1936. In the early 1990s it was found to
be understrength and having spalled concrete and corroding reinforcement.
Among other strengthening works, it was necessary to reinforce haunches
in the longitudinal beams located by the intermediate supports. Slots were
cut out by robot-controlled water-jetting and the reinforcement was fixed in
place. The work was constrained by safety requirements and the location
that was designated a site of special scientific interest (SSSI). On completion
of the repairs, the concrete was re-alkalised and cosmetic coatings were
applied to the concrete.
STRENGTHENING 327
Woodbridge Old (so named to distinguish it from the new bridge beside
it) across the River Wey in Guildford, Surrey, is a single-span, reinforced
concrete structure having arch beams and constructed in 1912. When
assessed in 1988, it was found that the beam-and-slab deck contained
spalled areas, there was insufficient longitudinal steel in the top slab near
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
the supports, and the stirrups were grossly overstressed. The shear resist-
ance was increased by drilling centrally through the beams at 500 mm
centres and grouting in 25 mm bars. In the event the drilling proved difficult
as several of the cutting bits failed and it was necessary to switch to rock
drilling. There were problems when reinforcement steel was encountered,
the drill vibrated and sound concrete was broken off. The shear bars were
grouted with proprietary non-shrink grout to provide the design pull-out
strength within 150 mm of the bottom of the bar.
Bonded plating
In certain circumstance, it may be appropriate to strengthen an under-
strength member by plate bonding. This technique consists of attaching
steel or carbon fibre reinforced plastic plates to the external surface of the
concrete using a suitable epoxy resin adhesive, as shown in Fig. 12.13.
In plate bonding, by adding additional reinforcement to the surface of the
member, the ultimate strength of the section and its stiffness are increased.
This technique can be used to increase the flexural strength and stiffness
of slabs, beams and columns, and to a certain extent the shear strength
of beams.
The increase in strength and stiffness achieved is critically dependent on
the bond between the existing structure and the plates. It is essential there-
fore, before strengthening a member by plate bonding, to establish that the
risk of corrosion to reinforcement within the member is low and that the
cover concrete, including any repairs, is sound and free from cracks or spal-
ling. Before bonding, the concrete is grit blasted with a fine abrasive material
to remove the surface laitance and expose the aggregate. Any small pro-
trusions are removed by careful scabbling or grinding. When steel plates
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
are used they should be sand blasted to remove all traces of rust and mill
scale and cleaned with a suitable organic solvent to remove any oil or gre-
ase. After cleaning, the surfaces are immediately protected with a coat of
suitable priming paint or aluminium spray to prevent corrosion. It should
be noted that stainless steel plating is unsuitable, as it is difficult to obtain
adequate adhesion.
Epoxy resins have been found to be the most suitable adhesives for plate
bonding and can be applied either by trowel or by injection. The thickness
of the adhesive coat, typically in the range 0.5 mm to 5.0 mm, has been
found to have little effect on the strength of the connection.
The quality of the bond and hence the strength of the plated member is
very sensitive to the skill and care of the labour used. Modern epoxy resins
are supplied in ‘two pack’ form in the appropriate proportions for site mix-
ing. Nevertheless, thorough mixing is required and it is essential that all of
the hardener is used. It is also essential that all of the mating surfaces are
adequately covered with adhesive and particular attention should be paid
to the edges of the plate, which should be sealed with a resin putty or
mortar to prevent the future ingress of water or other contaminants. Ends
of the plates are bolted to the concrete to prevent debonding and peeling
from the high stress concentration. The bolts which are grouted into the
parent material beforehand, also aid positioning of the plates.
As the plates are unloaded when bonded to the concrete, they will not
carry any permanent loads and are therefore effective for live loading only.
Bonded steel plating was introduced in the 1970s and numerous bridges
have been strengthened, usually having the plates attached to their soffits.
It has been found that mild corrosion can develop on the steel interface
starting from the edges of the plates, although this has not caused any prob-
lems to date. Two pairs of bridges on the M5 motorway at Quinton were
strengthened with bonded steel plates in 1975. The bonding has been moni-
tored by impact-echo testing (hammer-tapping) and it has been shown that
with the exception of a few small areas, it has remained generally sound.
Initially 0.05% of the plated area was debonded, this increased to 1.5% after
18 years.
More recently carbon fibre reinforced plastic plates have become popular
because they have a lighter weight, are not susceptible to corrosion, do not
require bolting and are easier to use.
The method of plate bonding has the advantage that when applied to
soffits, headroom is not significantly reduced and it is structurally efficient.
However, carbon fibre reinforced resin plates can give off toxic fumes if
exposed to fire.
All types of bonded plating require periodic inspection to check for
debonding. Unless painted or otherwise disguised, bonded plating can
change the appearance as shown in Fig. 12.14.
STRENGTHENING 329
External post-tensioning
Significant increases in the strength of concrete members can be achieved
through the use of retrofitted post-tensioning. Post-tensioning can be
applied to ordinary reinforced or prestressed concrete. On smaller members
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
against the anchorage bracket. After removal of loose concrete and grit
blasting of exposed reinforcement, galvanised mesh was wrapped around
the sides of the beams and soffits. The assemblage was gunited to provide
38 mm cover to protect the Macalloy bars and brackets. As a result, the
beams became somewhat bulbous in cross-section and disfigured. It was
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
noted that there was a probable loss of about 25% of the gunite due to
rebound and lack of hydration. The scheme avoided interruption to traffic
and was economic.
Eraclea Bridge across the River Piave near Venice is a bowstring structure
of 25 m span constructed in the 1950s. By the 1990s, it was evident that
there was honeycombing in the concrete, transverse cracks in the deck,
spalling and corroded reinforcement. One of the individual ties had failed
several years earlier and been replaced, the others were strengthened. The
bridge was being overloaded due to imposition of increased loading require-
ments since it was designed. Demolition and replacement was not con-
sidered an option due to unacceptable disruption to traffic and the historic
value of the bridge. The deck was strengthened by the addition of 150 mm
reinforced concrete, likewise the arch ribs. Each of the longitudinal tie
beams was post-tensioned with 40 mm diameter Macalloy bars anchored in
steel brackets designed to enable future inspection and located on either
side of the beam. The total cost was comparable with a new structure, but
remained the preferred option.
Overslab
Overslabs are used on occasions when the concrete deck has become badly
deteriorated and understrength, or is simply understrength for current load
requirements. Depending on the design of the bridge, it may be possible to
absorb the thickness of added reinforced concrete into the deck surfacing,
otherwise there may be a step which has to be tapered by the approaches
either side of the bridge. The taper has to be gradual to avoid development
of impact loading as heavy vehicles run on to the deck. Overslabbing is
economic and has the added advantage that waterproofing and drainage
can be improved at the same time. It has the disadvantage that traffic is
severely interrupted by the closure of at least one lane at a time while the
work is carried out.
The deck of Woodbridge Old (see earlier discussion on added
reinforcement) was found to have insufficient flexural strength. The deck
was structurally sound, but there were numerous areas of spalled concrete.
An overslab was cast on to the existing deck, structural connection being
ensured by insertion and grouting of dowel bars at 500 mm spacing into the
existing deck to act as shear connectors. The work was carried out in four
phases to minimise disruption to traffic.
In Poland, testing and strengthening work was carried out on a four-span
viaduct, constructed in 1951, and found to be understrength to carry mod-
ern traffic. The structure had a continuous deck designed to carry 15 tonne
vehicles. Due to ineffective drainage, the concrete deteriorated over 40
332 CONCRETE
place. The soffit was prepared in the same way, transverse reinforcement
was fixed and covered in a 30 mm thickness of shotcrete. In addition to the
added reinforcement, steel anchorage plates were bonded and bolted to the
side faces of the deck and 16 mm diameter bars were fitted and post-ten-
sioned transversely to the deck.
Donner Summit Bridge, California (mentioned in the previous section) was
found to have deteriorated concrete and it was desired to strengthen the
bridge to current vehicular loading requirements and seismic resistance.
Among other works, the running surface and cover concrete on the upper
face of the deck were removed. In places, concrete below the reinforcement
steel had deteriorated due to de-icing salt and this also had to be removed.
An 85 mm overslab, reinforced to strengthen the deck to carry full vehicular
loading was cast in place. The overslab was designed to act as a horizontal
diaphragm ‘to tie the bridge together from abutment to abutment’.
MANAGEMENT PRACTICE
Assessment of load carrying capacity of older concrete bridges is invariably
hampered by a lack of information and it is often necessary to check the
sizes and spacing of reinforcement. Concrete cores may have to be removed
for testing to determine actual compressive strength. Likewise, short lengths
of reinforcing bar may have to be tested, but it is necessary to ensure that
they are only removed from non-critical locations so that the bridge is not
structurally weakened.
When bridges carrying normal traffic and exhibiting no signs of distress,
are found to be apparently understrength, it is often appropriate to investi-
gate whether there is any ‘hidden strength’. This can be done by applying
more advanced methods of analysis coupled by use of the results of avail-
able research as described earlier in this chapter.
Prestressed concrete
The above applies mainly to reinforced concrete, which comprises the
majority of concrete bridges constructed before 1960. There are, however,
a small number of early prestressed and post-tensioned bridges and these
present special problems, particularly in relation to inspection. The collapse
of Ynys-y-Gwas Bridge in 1985 and the subsequent failure investigation (see
‘Performance of concrete’) showed that corrosion of the post-tensioning
steel can progress to a very advanced stage without exhibiting any discern-
ible evidence on the external surfaces of the concrete. Although consider-
able research has been carried out to develop non-destructive and semi-
destructive methods of inspection, the most effective and reliable method
is to physically expose the steel. This is achieved by identifying as accu-
rately as possible, the location of the post-tensioning ducts and drilling, or
coring, a hole close to the depth of the ducting. The ducting is then gently
exposed and peeled back. The inside can then be inspected to determine
whether it has been properly grouted; if not, the steel tendons will be
exposed as shown in Fig. 12.15, so that an endoscope can be inserted into
the duct and any corrosion will be evident. If the duct has been well grouted,
there is a low likelihood of corrosion, but it is prudent to gently remove the
grout and expose the steel. There have been occasions when severe local
corrosion has occurred beneath the grout. This can be due to chlorides
penetrating through the grout or being present in the original mix, as cal-
cium chloride, to accelerate the curing process.
The prestressing tendons are most likely to corrode at places where voids
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
can form during the grouting process, leaving the steel unprotected at:
Corrosion can occur, less commonly, at places where the tendons touch
steel components and the grouting is without significant voids but may con-
tain chlorides. Likely locations are:
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Mallett, G.P. (1994) Repair of Concrete Bridges. TRL state-of-the-art review, Thomas
Telford, London.
Broomfield, J.P. (1997) Corrosion of Steel in Concrete, Spon, London.
Hampshire County Council. (2000) Bridges in Hampshire of Historic Interest,
Hampshire County Council, Winchester.
Chrimes, M.A. (1996) The Development of Concrete Bridges in the British Isles prior to
1940. Proc ICE, Structure and Buildings.
Public Works Roads and Transport Congress. (1933) British Bridges.
The Engineers’ Year Book. (1923) Crosby Lockwood and Son.
Brown, J.H. (1987) The Performance of Concrete in Practice: A Field Study of Highway
Bridges. TRL Contractor Report 43, Crowthorne.
The Institution of Civil Engineers. (1998) Supplementary Load Testing of Bridges,
Thomas Telford, London.
Wallbank, E.J. (1989) The Performance of Concrete in Bridges – A Survey of 200 High-
way Bridges. London: HMSO.
Andrew, A.E. and Turner, F.H. (1985) Post-tensioning Systems for Concrete in the UK:
1940–1985. CIRIA Report 106 Construction Industry Research and Information
Association, London.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Chapter 13
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
The architecture of
bridges
GLOSSARY
Arrises The edges of metal, timber, brick or stone
components
Ashlar Smoothly dressed (faced) and squared
stones laid to precise horizontal courses
Classical Architectural style derived from ancient
Greek and Roman architecture
Corework Material in the centre of masonry
construction, often poor quality infill
between better-built facework
Corinthian A Greek order of architecture using
columns, the capitals of which are carved
in the form of Acanthus leaves
Diaper work Diagonal pattern, usually of differently
coloured bricks, often achieved by
incorporation of dark over-burnt headers
Doric A Greek order of architecture using
columns with simple moulded capitals and
often no base
Facework The visible outer part of masonry
construction, often better built than the
interior ‘corework’
Garlanded Architectural decoration of fruit or foliage
in circular form
Guano Faeces and accumulation of other debris
left by pigeons and other birds
340 THE ARCHITECTURE OF BRIDGES
timber construction
BACKGROUND
A bridge, almost by definition, indicates a structure of engineering com-
petence, but what is its architectural component? Certainly, it is not merely
the decorative trimmings that may be applied, though they may contribute
to the overall architectural effect. Rather, it is related to the aesthetic
appearance of the design, as a unit of construction, and to the impact of
that design on its surroundings.
Bridges have evolved, like other buildings, through various historical
styles. Thus the Greek ‘beam and slab’ form of construction, seen initially
in the simplest of buildings and in the early ‘clapper’ bridges, has developed
through timber structures to modern steel and concrete beam and slab
bridges. Likewise, introduction by the Romans of the arch-form, seen in their
aqueducts for example, set the scene for development of many major arched
bridges. Suspension and cantilever bridges, perhaps, have less architectural
precedent, their forms being found in nature, for instance in spiders’ webs,
vines and in tree branches.
Engineering criteria for bridge construction include the width of obstacle
to be spanned, nature of the ground and abutments and the effect of
environmental conditions on the structure. Architectural criteria, almost
conversely, include the overall impact of the structure on the environment
and the unifying of the various elements of the structure into an aesthet-
ically pleasing whole.
A ‘pure’ structure may display no overtly architectural trimmings, yet be
acknowledged as having fine architectural qualities. Brunel’s Tamar Bridge
and Baker and Fowler’s Forth Railway bridge, also some relatively modern
award-winning concrete bridges come within this category. In other cases,
careful application of non-structural architectural features has transformed
an otherwise utilitarian engineering solution into a pleasing overall design.
SCULPTURE ON BRIDGES
Sculpture on bridges has been important at many times. The Roman Ponte
d’Angelo of 136 AD has Bernini’s famous angel statues added in 1668. The
fourteenth century Karlsbrucke in Prague is famous for its thirty baroque
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
statues of 1707. Around 1900, they were popular all over the world, for
example the bronze winged horses on Arlington Memorial Bridge, Wash-
ington, (1932) shown in Fig. 13.1. Repair and conservation of statuary is a
specialist’s task, but patinated bronze should not be cleaned or polished
with anything. Gilded bronze can be regilded, but not mechanically bur-
nished or painted. Terracotta (e.g. the Westminster Bridge lion) should only
be washed with water and never blasted with any abrasive, since this would
remove the delicate weather resistant fireskin. The cleaning of stone varies
considerably, dependent on the type of stone and type of dirt. Restoring
concrete sculpture is a specialist version of patch repairs to concrete struc-
tures, e.g. Taft Bridge, Washington (1907). The repainting of cast iron sculp-
tures (e.g. Vauxhall Bridge, Fig. 13.4) should follow similar guidance to that
on cast iron structures.
BRIDGE DESIGNERS
Although with the advent of the Industrial Revolution engineers were
increasingly commissioned as bridge designers, before the beginning of the
nineteenth century most of the leading architects had designed major
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Sir Edwin Lutyens was without doubt the best of the British bridge archi-
tects of the period, and also the most prolific. Apart from his Thames
bridges, others are the bridges in Surrey, designed with W.P. Robinson the
County Engineer, including Pilgrims Way Bridge at Guildford, the Mole
Bridge at East Molesey and a dozen bridges along the A30 Staines bypass.
They tend to use local brick with stone trimming, all beautifully detailed,
as good as any of his great country houses. The proportions are elegant
and graceful. The form and details are appropriate to the location: grand
and florid near a palace, but simple and rustic in the countryside. The quan-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
tity and quality of the detail reflects the proximity of the viewer, particularly
for pedestrians and when viewed from a boat. However, he is very much
an engineer’s architect, he is always careful to express truthfully the struc-
ture for what it is, for example a concrete arch is expressed as such on the
facade, with the brickwork carefully shown to be non-load-bearing. Sadly
many of his bridges are now unappreciated and not maintained with the
care with which they were designed.
from the fifteenth century, but last widened on each side in 1925, now has
iron torchères at regular intervals supporting lanterns of that period, though
now containing fluorescent lamps.
Nearby at Barnstaple, however, a similar multi-arched bridge of medieval
origin built across the estuary has a forest of much less-elegant conventional
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
tall lighting standards with sodium lamps. The standards bear no relation-
ship to the bridge in scale or appearance.
It is important that where possible due recognition should be paid to the
scale and materials of an historic bridge, whilst maintaining the required
level of illumination. Access for maintenance must also be borne in mind.
This has been achieved quite harmoniously in many places, for instance at
Bradford-on-Avon, where elegant iron standards have been attached around
the stone parapet balustrades. The lanterns illustrated are of modern design
(a variant of the ‘Westminster’ lantern), and are fitted with high-efficiency
lamps, yet are in scale with the older standards on which they are mounted.
Unfortunately, modern lighting on old bridges is not always treated so
sympathetically. The otherwise attractive old suspension bridge at Wheel-
ing, WV, USA, Fig. 13.7, is marred by incongruously modern light fittings.
Where older lanterns survive on historic bridges they should be retained
and kept in good repair wherever possible. The example illustration at Dur-
ham, Fig. 13.8, complete with its ventilated capping, still retains its original
gas gear, although it appears to have been converted to electricity.
This ‘Grosvenor’-type lantern has the more expensive circular glass
enclosure, but the more commonly found ‘Windsor’ variant is shown in
Fig. 13.9 with four flat sides. Here, at Queens Avenue Bridge, Aldershot the
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Joseph Armitage, who also designed the well-known emblem for the
National Trust.
Another aspect of bridge lighting is illumination of the structure itself.
This may be achieved by floodlighting or by highlighting the profile of the
structure. Professional advice by specialist lighting designers is necessary
for both types of illumination. Many of the Thames bridges are lit in one or
both of these ways. The masonry or composite bridges lend themselves
best for floodlighting, for example Tower Bridge and Waterloo Bridge. The
latter, with its light-coloured shallow arches, responds well to up-lighting
below each arch. Obviously there is less substance in suspension bridges
so the Albert Bridge, for example, is delineated very well at night by its
profile picked out in hundreds of individual lamps. Another, but much larger
and more modern suspension bridge, the Pont du Normandy near Le Havre
in France, is spectacularly lit by moving beams of laser light.
Provided that light sources do not dazzle users on or below a bridge,
there is considerable scope for effective and efficient illumination of historic
bridges of all kinds, but the luminaries themselves should not be obtrusive
during the daytime.
Regard must be paid when considering illumination, to any statutory
requirements, for instance traffic lights, railway signals and navigation
lights. Whilst if they are necessary, they should be discreetly, but clearly
located on a historic structure, other forms of lighting must not be allowed
to distract bridge users from the primary purpose of any statutory lighting.
PARAPETS AND BALUSTRADES 351
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Sometimes when a bridge has been widened, the opportunity has been
taken to raise or strengthen the parapet. Unusually when the fifteenth cen-
tury Rothern Bridge at Great Torrington, Devon (Fig. 13.15), was widened,
arches and parapets were formed all in vertically coursed granite, an
extremely strong method of construction.
For reasons of economy, bridges were usually built as narrow as possible,
even though many were subsequently widened. On long multi-arched
bridges, where traffic was heavy, this could be hazardous to foot travellers
if they were unable to step aside from passing carts and coaches. Pedestrian
‘refuges’ are therefore commonly found conveniently built over cutwaters,
a distinctive feature of many masonry bridges. In country areas, where there
are no footpaths across bridges, these refuges remain a useful haven from
increasingly heavy and fast road vehicles. On railways, also, it is a require-
ment for refuges to be provided at regular intervals on bridges, as well as
in cuttings and tunnels.
As the design of masonry bridges developed in the seventeenth and eight-
eenth centuries, parapets became more elaborate. Clare Bridge, Cambridge,
built in 1644, is adorned with a balustraded parapet enriched by carved
panels over the cutwaters and keystones, surmounted by fourteen stone
balls. Hawksmoor’s bridge for St John’s College, Cambridge (1698) has
enriched balustraded parapets of similar design, but without the stone balls.
Vanbrugh, at Blenheim in the early eighteenth century, integrated the para-
pets with the extended voussoirs from the main arch in a typically
baroque gesture.
Balustrades, rather than solid parapets, became the norm in the eight-
eenth century. John Gwynn’s Magdalen Bridge at Oxford, for example, has
balusters interspersed with plain ashlar die blocks and projecting piers over
the cutwaters. This balustrade has been repaired in recent years, badly
decayed balusters being renewed in matching stone.
Canal bridges almost invariably have stout parapets, often in engineering
brickwork with heavy half-round granite copings. Because these hump-
backed bridges in country areas are often on busy narrow country lanes,
their parapets tend to suffer from vehicles scraping the sides or, even worse,
demolishing the brickwork. Protective bollards and kerbs help to preserve
such parapets where road conditions permit. It is interesting to note that,
whilst brickwork on the face of canal bridges is laid in horizontal courses,
that to the parapets follows the slope of the pathway thus avoiding cut-
bricks. The most elegant canal bridge parapets are found on ‘roving’ bridges
where the canal path (and the parapet) rises on one side of the canal bank,
passes over the bridge and drops to the other bank.
Decorative brickwork is less often found in bridge parapets although, as
noted above, Sir Edwin Lutyens was skilled in its use. Parapets on the little
bridge at Elvetham Hall by Teulon are good examples of this type of brick-
work. The patterns are produced from relatively soft red brick ‘rubbers’
which are sometimes prone to erosion, which is exacerbated if a hard mor-
PARAPETS AND BALUSTRADES 355
Pain’s Hill, Bath, is an elegant example and others are the so-called ‘Math-
ematical’ bridges at Cambridge and at Whitwick, West Midlands.
With the advent of iron bridges came iron parapets or railings. The sim-
plest iron railings are found on the earlier suspension bridges, for instance
Brunel’s bridge (finished after his death), over the Avon Gorge at Clifton,
Bristol. A simple and effective parapet is one of woven wrought iron bands,
often with a cast iron capping. This was a favourite device on the many
delightful railway footbridges still surviving. Wrought iron needs to be kept
well painted, with good maintenance, or corrosion can build up in the many
lapped joints.
Cast iron is less prone to corrosion and has been used for parapets of
many of the Thames bridges, for instance in Westminster and Lambeth
bridges, where its ability to be cast in decorative shapes is seen to good
advantage. Twickenham Bridge has parapets of concrete and bronze, which
is relatively corrosion-resistant. Waterloo Bridge has steel parapet rails set
directly into a Portland stone plinth. Unfortunately there seems to be no
provision for thermal movement and the stone has fractured in many places.
The early concrete bridges built up to about 1940 were designed with
decorative features, for example panelling, balustrades, pilasters, etc.,
Fig. 13.16, and their appearance is more interesting than the minimalist
designs that came later.
SURFACE DECORATION
Many masonry bridges are faced in roughly coursed stonework that collects
lichens and merges well with their rural settings. Surface texture is
important in large-scale structures like bridges, as also their detailing so
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
that the structure reads well when viewed both from a distance and close
at hand. Thus some of the finest viaducts are built in massive roughly rusti-
cated blocks of stone, but with their arrises finely dressed. It is important,
when repair or renewal of masonry is required, that the scale of large blocks
is maintained, with the detailing repeated in any new work.
Surface decoration of parkland and urban bridges is usually more sophisti-
cated, with classical or gothic vocabulary according to the style of adjacent
buildings. In the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries classical styles were
almost universal, with the return of gothic architecture from the early nine-
teenth century. Medieval gothic bridges, almost universally, have very
restrained surface decoration, most of the mouldings being derived from a
structural or constructional requirement. In some ways, this kind of embel-
lishment might be said to be the most ‘true to form’.
Decoration arising naturally from the structure includes moulded ribs to
the arches of medieval bridges, Fig. 13.17. Projecting band courses or cor-
bels, at the springing of arches were often provided to support centring for
the arches, with putlog holes left as decorative features when the centring
and access scaffolding was removed.
If cutwaters did not rise to provide pedestrian refuges, the offsets were
sometimes decoratively treated, the decoration ranging from stepped offset
stones to leaping dolphins on the English bridge at Shrewsbury and larger
than life-size bronzed figures (of the arts, sciences, etc.) at Vauxhall Bridge,
London, Fig. 13.4.
The base course of a parapet is often marked by a projecting moulded
‘string’, sometimes this delineating the change from horizontal courses in
the walling below to sloping courses of the parapet, see Fig. 13.17.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
In the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries, the scope for surface decor-
ation of classical bridges was extended considerably. Abutments, plinths,
quoins and arch voussoirs were often emphasised by rustication (bold v-
jointing of stones). Hawksmoor’s St John’s Bridge at Cambridge, unlike the
similar but earlier Clare Bridge, has boldly rusticated voussoirs extended
to fill the whole of the spandrels between the cutwaters. Vanbrugh, at
Blenheim, carried this idea even further, as noted in the previous section
on parapets.
Hawksmoor and subsequent architects also employed a comprehensive
range of classical detailing to parapet string courses and copings, especially
when these were able to be viewed close at hand. It is interesting that Van-
brugh’s unfinished design at Blenheim, although displaying dramatic use of
classical motifs, is completely lacking in detailed mouldings. This is because
the bridge was designed primarily to be seen as a distant view across the
park.
The Palladian bridges at Stowe, Prior Park (Fig. 4.8) and Wilton Park, on
the other hand were designed to be enjoyed, not only from a distance, but
when crossed as part of a tour of the grounds. They are thus full of intimate
with low-relief rosettes very typical of Robert Adam and more often recog-
nised in his ceiling designs. Kedleston, Chester and Totnes bridges also have
elegant semi-circular niches in their abutments as in Fig. 13.18. In the latter
two, the abutments are designed as classical pavilions, with pediments set
over friezes, Chester is complete with triglyphs and guttae.
The architectural desire to express the importance of a bridge and give
an otherwise utilitarian structure some presence was sometimes achieved
by the construction of ornate pavilions. Examples include the Balcombe Rail
Viaduct in Sussex and Rochester Bridge, shown in Fig. 5.19.
Engineer John Rennie was fond of decorating his bridges with classical
pilasters, or columns, as at Kelso bridge, Roxburgh. These serve no very
practical purpose, but add stature to what would otherwise be rather
plain structures.
As with the Palladian bridges, scope for surface decoration increases
when the bridge structure rises above parapet level. This is particularly so
Bridge, London
Fig. 13.21 Albert
Fig. 13.20 Clifton
Suspension Bridge
SURFACE DECORATION
359
360 THE ARCHITECTURE OF BRIDGES
examples.
Marlow Suspension Bridge and the Albert Suspension Bridge, Fig. 13.21
both have decorative iron suspension towers.
As already noted in parapets, cast iron gave designers considerable free-
dom for enriching their bridges with surface decoration. Perhaps the most
spectacular decorative use of this material is seen in the spandrels of Tel-
ford’s bridge over the river Conway at Betws-y-Coed. A riot of roses, thistles,
shamrocks and leeks fills the spaces over arched inscription borders. The
North Road Bridge, Exeter, is another splendid example of cast iron decor-
ation, Fig. 13.22.
Other bridge engineers added architectural decoration to essentially
engineering structures, the Tower Bridge, London, being the ‘tour-de-force’
of this kind of treatment. Stephenson and Telford had gothic portals added
to their railway and road bridges at Conway. Telford added similar gothic
turrets at each end of his splendid Craigellachie arched iron bridge. More
recently, the long-span steel-arched bridge between Newcastle and Gates-
head was provided at each end with pairs of massive neo-classical pavilions.
EMBLEMS
Emblems on our older bridges are relatively rare, but need to be preserved
where they still exist. One of the earliest set is on the Brig O’Dee at Aber-
deen, where inscriptions and coats-of-arms of Bishop Dumbar (1520–1627)
are cut in stone on the cutwaters.
The Cambridge college bridges have coats-of-arms and emblems relating
to each college, for example the portcullis carved on the parapet and gate
piers of St John’s Bridge. The keystone of bridge arches was a favoured spot
for emblems, for instance the garlanded heads on Magdalen Bridge, Oxford.
With the introduction of cast iron, emblems became more prolific on
bridges. Many of the Thames bridges bear coats-of-arms of the cities of Lon-
don and Westminster and the London boroughs. Railway bridges also have
their emblems, one of the most elaborately spectacular being of the (former)
London, Chatham and Dover Railway on the abutment of a former railway
bridge next to Blackfriar’s Bridge, London, Fig. 13.23, although both the
bridge itself and the railway company have long since disappeared! It is
encouraging that the large cast-iron structure, dated 1864, is still kept
well painted.
The national emblems, rose, thistle, leek and shamrock in cast-iron on
Betws-y-Coed Bridge have already been mentioned. The unusual coat-of-
362 THE ARCHITECTURE OF BRIDGES
쐌 Their ‘natural’ rate of corrosion, noting that mild steel will oxidise more
quickly than cast iron and that wrought iron has a very variable rate of
corrosion dependent upon the quality of its initial forging.
쐌 Conditions that may increase or reduce the natural rate of corrosion.
Water-holding pockets will tend to increase the rate. Quick-drying sur-
faces and surfaces from which air and water are excluded will be less
susceptible to corrosion.
쐌 Their accessibility and the frequency of access currently required to
maintain that part in good order.
쐌 Current availability of access equipment, either ‘built-in’ as in safety har-
ness cleats or free-standing as in hydraulic-lift platforms.
쐌 Identification of critical points in the structure, where excessive cor-
rosion could be catastrophic.
ford Railway Bridge was, until recently, decorated in colours that identified
each structural element, an attractive idea that helped observers to under-
stand the structure.
Other bridges have their architectural detail highlighted as in interior dec-
oration. This can be overdone. One needs to recognise, as in plasterwork,
that light (sunlight or artificial), falling on the differently inclined surfaces
of a moulding will give different tonal strengths to the same colour, enhanc-
ing the three-dimensional effect of the moulding. This subtlety can be
negated if the mouldings themselves are picked out in too many different
colours.
Westminster Bridge is a good example where the florid multitone painting
has been replaced by the original single colour of paint. The shadow effect
of the modelling gives the required differences in tone to emphasise the
architectural modelling. Similarly the overdone gilding has been edited back
to the original intention, where it makes the details of the carved roses and
lantern ornament sparkle, thus emphasizing the form of the bridge, making
it look elegant rather than brassy.
Bridges with many ledges can attract the unwelcome attention of birds
who perch or nest, unless deterred, and create an unhealthy build-up of
guano, Fig. 13.24. This can be unhealthy for the structure, because of the
quantity of damp and corrosive material, and unhealthy for maintenance
operators because of the risk of disease (the writer was laid up for 6 months
after catching psittacosis, now known as ornithosis, from pigeon guano).
Any such accumulation will require specialist removal to avoid a health haz-
ard.
the problem.
Alternatives to painting are sometimes appropriate, especially to the
stranded cables of suspension bridges where corrosion can occur in places
inaccessible to paint. Some bridges have cables wrapped in several layers
of protective tape which excludes water better than paint, but which still
requires regular maintenance.
hard, when set, than the material it separates and should not project beyond
the surface. Hard, projecting, ‘ribbon’ pointing, as well as being unsightly,
can trap water which, on freezing, will damage the brickwork more than if
there were no pointing at all!
Most canal bridges built entirely of brick, but with stone copings, have
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
survived some 200 years really well, which is a tribute to their good initial
materials and construction. Their barrel vaults may be turned in one of two
ways: either by three or four courses of brickwork laid one above the other,
or by a single course one or two bricks deep set at right angles to the
intrados of the arch. A few canal bridges were built to a more elaborate
design than the ‘standard’ bridge. At Cosgrove, Northamptonshire, the road
bridge over the canal was built to celebrate the opening of the Grand Junc-
tion Canal in 1800. It is faced in stone with an enriched four-centred arch
flanked by turrets and both ‘blind’ and ‘recessed’ niches. The Regent’s Park
brick canal bridge designed by James Morgan, is embellished with bull’s
eye recesses in the spandrels and massive cast-iron columns or pilasters
supporting the springing of the vault. John Rennie used similar columns
decoratively at the old Waterloo Bridge, London (now replaced), and at
Kelso, Roxburgh (still extant).
Some of the greatest railway viaducts were also built in brick, including
at Welwyn, Hertfordshire and across the Welland Valley, Northamptonshire.
Whilst these and other railway bridges still in use continue to receive reg-
ular maintenance, some no longer used by the railway companies, because
the rail track has been lifted and the land sold off, will need continuing care,
even in alternative use as footpaths or cycle ways. Drainage channels need
to be kept clear of vegetation or water can build up behind spandrel walls
and abutments, which on freezing, can badly damage facing brickwork.
Smaller nineteenth and twentieth century bridges, whether of all masonry
construction or of composite construction with iron or steel girders or
trusses, sometimes have decorative brick piers, for instance diaper work of
different coloured bricks, or by the use of recessed or projecting panels.
Care should be taken during repairs to ensure that such patterns are main-
tained. Lutyen’s use of brick in bridges has already been mentioned. He
often used thin bricks with relatively wide joints, quite unlike the canal and
railway bridges, which were normally built in large bricks with narrow
joints. Lutyen’s brickwork quickly took on a ‘rustic’ flavour which is quite
difficult to match when repairs are necessary. It is vital that replacement
bricks should be handmade to the same gauge as the originals; it is not
satisfactory to cut down ‘full’ bricks because of the harsh edges that would
be produced.
AESTHETICS OF CONCRETE
With the exception of a few notable examples, concrete bridges, have gener-
ally failed to achieve the aesthetic appeal of steel and masonry. This is prob-
ably due to a variety of reasons. Until recent years the more scenic location
and longer crossings that showed bridges to best advantage have been
bridged by masonry or steel, leaving concrete to be used for the shorter
spans in less attractive locations. The aesthetics of concrete bridges in the
BIBLIOGRAPHY 367
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
BIBLIOGRAPHY
‘The Aesthetics of Concrete Bridges’, 2000 Concrete Bridge Development Group Tech-
nical Guide 4 (ISBN 0 946691 80 0), Crowthorne.
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Chapter 14
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Archaeology
RECORDING ARCHAEOLOGY
At the simplest level, such recording is likely to entail historic and carto-
graphic research in such sources as county and national heritage records,
record offices, and journals and periodicals. Original drawings (architects
and engineers) and specifications may sometimes be located, but more often
it is possible to locate and use contemporary accounts of the construction.
Both sources may reveal information hidden from a current inspection by
more recent additions or modifications. It is also nearly always necessary
to produce a comprehensive photographic record and drawings of the
bridge ‘as found’, and these should be updated and annotated throughout
works to provide a complete record of the new works, as well as of the
original. Both photographs and drawings, in plan and elevation, should be
to suitable standard scales such as 1:20 and 1:50. The former Royal Com-
mission on the Historic Monuments of England produced an excellent guide
to the elements of a good structural record, see Bibliography for references
to guides to site recording.
Non-intrusive testing, such as surface-penetrating radar, is increasingly
being used to assist in the design of repair works, and the results are equally
useful to the archaeologist in revealing hidden elements of structures.
Intrusive exploration of a structure is often required by the engineers to
define the precise extent of repairs, and these works should be at least
monitored by, if not undertaken by, archaeologists. This is essentially an
370 ARCHAEOLOGY
excavation, and whilst the archaeological work may vary from or extend
the engineers’ requirements, the information arising from such work will be
equally valuable to both professions.
The archaeologists should also be retained to maintain a continuing rec-
ord of the historic elements of a structure throughout the works, in order
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
ARCHAEOLOGY OF FOUNDATIONS
Conservation of an historic bridge may require strengthening of its foun-
dations, but this could destroy significant buried archaeological evidence.
Piers, timber piles, rafts and inverts are all significant features that can yield
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
several of its original arches (three having been destroyed by floods in 1771)
and it was widened in the nineteenth century.
Before planning remedial works, an archaeological desk study should be
carried out to investigate the past history of the bridge and provide early
warning of the likelihood of any archaeological remains being present. There
374 ARCHAEOLOGY
are many examples of medieval bridges located in town centres which have
been widened on one side or both so that most of the original material is
hidden from view. These bridges are as worthy as others, because it is
always possible that they could be uncovered in the future if, for example,
the road is re-engineered or rerouted. Chantry Bridge Rotherham and Mor-
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
ton Bridge in Warwickshire are cases where original elevations have been
retrieved in this manner.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Royal Commission on the Historic Monuments of England. (1996) Recording Historic
Buildings: A Descriptive Specification, 3rd edn, RCHME.
Spence, C. (1990) Archaeological Site Manual of the Department of Urban Archaeology
Museum of London. The Museum of London.
Department of the Environment ‘Planning and Archaeology’ Policy Planning Guid-
ance Note 16 HMSO 1990, and ‘Planning and Historic Environment’ Note 15 1994.
English Heritage. (1991) The Management of Archaeological Projects.
Appendix
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Highways Agency bridges date back to the fifteenth century and some orig-
inated earlier. They encompass a variety of size and form of structures, the
majority of those built before 1915 are of masonry construction.
Altogether the Highways Agency is responsible for some 8,124 bridges
(National Structural Database, 2000), of which 339 were constructed before
1915. The structures are generally road-over-river or road-over-rail and vary
in size from single-span to eleven-span viaducts. Various materials have
been used in the construction of the bridges including stone, brick, slate,
iron and steel.
The bridges are listed in Table A1, which provides an overview of the
historic structures on the highway network. The bridge location, construc-
tion date and generic construction type are outlined with brief modification
details. ‘Visibility’ provides an indication of how prominent the structure is,
in relation to nearby dwellings, navigable waterways or from the structure
itself. The ‘Visual Condition’ identifies whether the original construction has
been retained or has been obscured by any modifications. Some modifi-
cations such as deck strengthening may have no impact on a bridge’s vis-
ual condition.
Dates of construction are usually taken as the earliest recorded refer-
ence to the bridge, but are questionable as they could be related to an
earlier structure. In cases when there are no credible records the dates
have been estimated from the appearance and form of construction,
hence many are broadly dated as, for example, twenty-five which are
entered as 1800.
The majority of the bridges built before 1915 are masonry arches con-
structed in brick or stone. Originally they were rather narrow and many
have had to be widened, sometimes on several occasions, in order to meet
the requirements of increased volumes of traffic. These modifications are
represented in Fig. A1 and summarised as follows:
376 HIGHWAYS AGENCY BRIDGES CONSTRUCTED UP TO 1915
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
There is a total of 296 masonry arch bridges. It can be seen that fourteen
of the bridges are national monuments and four of these have been widened
on one side. Eight are grade II listed and three have been widened. These
figures take into account that Marton Bridge, an ancient monument con-
structed by 1414 and probably much earlier, had a reinforced concrete
widening removed in 2000.
Marton bridge was constructed by 1414 and is a masonry arch structure
across the River Leam in Warwickshire. The bridge was widened in 1926 to
accommodate the ever-increasing traffic demands. However, in 2000, a new
structure has been built alongside, and the widening removed. The original
fabric of its construction has been exposed to restore the bridge to its for-
mer beauty.
All of the 138 bridges built between 1700 and 1840 are of masonry arch
construction. Wreaks Causeway is a good example of a slate masonry arch,
which is a three-span structure carrying the A595 over Kirby Pool in Cum-
bria. This bridge is of fine appearance and is set in beautiful surroundings.
Whatstandwell Bridge in Derbyshire is a stunning seven-span masonry
arch bridge, which has been classified as an ancient monument. The bridge
was constructed in 1795 and carries the A6 main road. It is in good condition
and in its original state, adding greatly to the character of the surround-
ing area.
The beginning of the nineteenth century saw the first railway bridge con-
struction, which can be illustrated by Scarrow Hill Railway Bridge on the
A69, built in 1838 in Cumbria. The single-span masonry bridge has been
strengthened in 1956 by the addition of a concrete saddle, although visually
it remains in its original condition.
APPENDIX 377
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1272 Llangua A465 Hereford & 4-span stone Y Widened High Poor V high Grade 2
Worcester arch
1414 Marton Bridge A423 Warwickshire Twin span Pedestrianised Medium Good Medium– Ancient
masonry Bridge low monument
importance
civic bridge
1430 Matlock A6 Derbyshire 3-span stone Y Widened High Good V high No
arch
1450 Hanging Bri A52 Staffordshire Stone 3-span Y Widened Medium Good V high No
f/arch-m/arch arch
1450 Hanging Bri A52 Staffordshire Stone Single arch Y Widened Medium Good High No
m/race-m/arch
1490 Hanging Bridge, A52 Staffordshire Stone 2-span Y Widened Medium Good V high No
orig arch
1500 Monks Bridge A38 Derbyshire 4-span masonry RC saddle High Original Medium Ancient
arch important monument
civic bridge
1597 Prospect Flood A40 Hereford & Twin-span stone High Good V high No
arch Worcester arch
1597 Cleeve A40 Hereford & 5-span stone High Good V high No
Worcester arch
1597 Wilton Flood A40 Hereford & Single-span stone Y Widened High Medium High No
arch Worcester arch
1597 Wilton Bridge A40 Hereford & 6-span brickwork Y Rolled steel Medium Original one side, Medium– Ancient
Worcester and masonry section & new parapet on low monument
arch concrete other elevation importance
extension civic bridge
1660 Heathfield Rly A38 Devon Stone arch Y Widened Medium — Medium No
M/arch
1700 Claymills (arch A38 Staffordshire Single-span Y Widened High Good High No
orig) brick/stone arch
1700 Beeston A A49 Cheshire Stone High Good High No
1730 Scampston A64 North Yorkshire 3-span classical High Good V high No
stone Structure
1750 Spithopehaugh A68 Northumberland Stone packhorse Y Widened Hidden Poor Low No
bridge
1750 Priests Bridge A1 Northumberland Stone arch Y Widened Dramatic stone Slight spalling Medium No
wall
1751 South Great Glen A6 Leicestershire Brick arch Y Widened Low Good Low No
Old
1751 Great Glen A6 Leicestershire 5-span segmental Pipeline added Medium Original Medium No
Bridge brick arch importance
civic bridge
1756 Longtown Bridge A7 Cumbria 5-span masonry Y Widened 1889 High-from Original one side Medium– Grade 2
arch footpath high
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1790 Crambeck Bridge A64 N. Yorkshire 6-span masonry Y Steel plate girder Medium Original one side Medium No
arch and troughing
R.C. saddle
1790 Wadesmill A10 Hertfordshire 6-span Obscured by Good V high No
brick/stone arch vegetation
1790 Nell Lock Canal A41 Oxfordshire Masonry arch Y Prestressed beam High from canal Original one side Medium– No
Bridge extension low
importance
civic bridge
1793 Strongford Bridge A34 Staffordshire Masonry arch Y R.C. simply Medium Original hidden by Major civic No
supported new simply Bridge
extension on supported R.C.
both sides extension
1795 Whatstandwell A6 Derbyshire 7-span masonry Retaining wall Medium-high Original Medium Ancient
Bridge arch added next to importance monument
bridge civic bridge
1796 Healam Old A1 Yorkshire Masonry arch Y Widened in Medium Extensions each Minor No
similar style to side in style of culvert
original original
1796 Ryton River A45 Warwickshire 3-span Y Extended twice Medium Original, one side Medium– No
Bridge brick/masonry on one side, in low
arch situ R.C. importance
civic bridge
1797 Weeford A38 Staffordshire Stone arch High Good High No
Northbound Orig
1797 Wychnor Bridge A38 Staffordshire 3-span masonry Y In situ R.C. Medium Original one side, Medium No
arch extension concrete other importance
civic bridge
1800 Ease Drain A1 Lincolnshire Brick Y Widened Rural 3 arch, good Minor No
1800 Humber Head A1 W. Yorkshire Stone Y Widened Hidden Poor, lacking No No
Dyke-M/arch
1800 The Tunnel A483 Shropshire Twin-span stone Medium Good Low No
culvert
1800 Gailey Canal (old) A5 Staffordshire Brick Y Widened V low Poor Low No
1800 Accommodation A58 W. Yorkshire Stone arch Low Medium Low No
1800 Dam Brook A59 Lancashire Stone arch Low Good Medium No
1800 Roam (orig A590 North Yorkshire Stone arch Y Widened Hidden — Low No
m/arch)
1800 Warney A6 Derbyshire Stone Low Poor Medium No
1800 Cliviger A646 Lancashire Stone arch Y Widened Hidden Poor Low No
1800 Redwater Clough A646 West Yorkshire Stone culvert Hidden Poor Low No
(M/arch)
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1800 Scaitcliffe A646 West Yorkshire Stone culvert Y Widened Hidden Poor Low No
(m/arch)
1800 Hawks Clough A646 West Yorkshire 3-span stone arch High Poor High No
Goit arch
1800 Luddenden Foot A646 West Yorkshire Stone culvert Y Widened Low Poor Low No
(m/arch)
1800 Ottercops A696 Northumberland Stone arch Medium Good Low No
(m/arch)
1800 Birdholme Bridge A61 Derbyshire Masonry arch Y R.C. simply Low Original Low No
supported importance
extension civic bridge
1800 Bridge Hotel A48 Gloucestershire Masonry arch Y Solid slab R.C Medium Original one side Medium No
extension
1800 Burton Overy A6 Leicestershire Twin-span Medium, High Original Medium No
Parish Boundary masonry arch importance
Bridge civic bridge
1800 Hambrook House A40 Gloucestershire Brick and Original hidden by Original Minor No
masonry arch vegetation culvert
1800 Hesketh Bridge A5 Northamptonshire Brick/masonry/ Low, hidden by Original Minor No
stone arch vegetation culvert
1800 Mytholmroyd A646 W. Yorkshire Masonry arch Y concrete encased High Original one side Medium– No
Canal Bridge steel beam low
footpath importance
widening civic bridge
1800 Sandford Mill A40 Gloucestershire Brick arch Medium–low, Original Minor No
Road Bridge cannot be seen culvert
from main road
1800 Towcester Bridge A5 Northamptonshire Twin-span Brick Low, hidden by Original Minor No
arch vegetation culvert
1800 Turvey Bridge A428 Bedfordshire 11-span masonry Y R.C. solid slab Medium Original one side Medium Ancient
arch extension importance monument
civic bridge
1800 East Morton A59 N. Yorkshire Double-Deck High High Grade 2
masonry arch
1800 Weedon Canal A45 Northamptonshire Masonry arch Y W.I./Jack arch Low Original one side Medium No
extension
1801 Onibury Mill A49 Shropshire Random rubble Low Original Minor Unknown
masonry arch culvert
1807 Bargate Bridge A16 Lincolnshire Masonry arch Y R.C. arch High Original one side Major civic Grade 2
extension bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1809 Bodley Brook A30 Devon Single-span Y Widened Rural low Good No No
(M/arch) brick/stone arch
1809 Fenny Bridge A30 Devon 3-span brick arch Medium Original Medium No
importance
civic bridge
1810 Wadesmill Hill A10 Hertfordshire Brick arch Rural Good Minor No
1810 Radford Canal A34 Staffordshire Brick arch Y Widened Poor Poor No No
Original
1810 Rushton Canal A523 Staffordshire Stone arch Low Good Medium No
Feeder
1810 Hugg A523 Cheshire Stone arch High Good Medium Grade 2
1810 Bosley or Linfoot A523 Cheshire Stone arch Medium Good Medium No
1810 Radford River A34 Staffordshire 3-span brick arch R.C. footpath Medium, obscured Steel parapets Medium No
Bridge added adjacent on one side by added importance
to structure footbridge civic bridge
1811 Wayford Bridge A49 Shropshire Masonry arch Y R.C. arch Medium Original one side Medium– Unknown
widening 1929 low
importance
civic bridge
1814 Holme Bridge A65 N. Yorkshire Twin-span Medium Original Medium No
masonry arch importance
civic bridge
1815 Bedford Town A6 Bedfordshire 5-span masonry Y R.C. extension High Original Medium– Ancient
Bridge arch high monument
1815 Tempsford North A1 Bedfordshire 7-span stone arch High Original Major civic Ancient
Flood arch bridge monument
1815 Tempsford South A1 Bedfordshire 7-span stone arch High Original Major civic Ancient
Flood arches bridge monument
1816 Fairfield Road A6 Derbyshire Brick/stone arch Y Widened Low Medium Medium No
masonry
1818 Waterhouses A523 Staffordshire Single-span Y R.C. solid slab Medium Original one side, Medium No
masonry arch arched deck masonry spandrel importance
and original civic bridge
relocated parapet
on other
1820 Ryshworth A650 West Yorkshire Stone arch Medium Poor Medium No
1820 Cottingley A650 West Yorkshire 5-span stone Y Widened High Good V high No
river bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1820 Cottingley Beck A650 West Yorkshire Stone culvert High Good High No
1820 Rochester A68 Northumberland Stone arch Y Widened Medium Medium Medium No
1820 Tempsford A1 Bedfordshire 3-span masonry R.C. Deck High, prominent Original Major civic Ancient
Bridge arch from navigable bridge monument
river
1821 Clyst Honiton A30 Devon 3-span masonry In situ concrete Medium Original with Medium No
Bridge arch deck added concrete deck importance
civic bridge
1821 Tarleton Bank A59 Lancashire 3-span masonry Concrete Medium Original Medium No
Hall Bridge arch reinforcement importance
civic bridge
1822 Chideock Road A35 Dorset Stone arch Y In situ R.C. slab Low Original one side Minor No
Bridge extension culvert
1822 Eden Bridge A66 Cumbria 4-span sandstone High Original Major civic No
masonry arch bridge
1823 Newton Bridge A4 Avon Masonry arch Y Concrete arch Low, hidden by Original one side Minor No
extension & vegetation culvert
concrete saddle
added
1823 Westlington A7 Cumbria Twin-span Medium Original Medium– No
Bridge masonry arch low
importance
civic bridge
1824 Gelt (New) Bridge A69 Cumbria Sandstone Y Widened 1824 Medium, low Original extended Medium No
masonry arch importance
civic bridge
1826 High Lane Canal A6 Greater Masonry arch High, from Original Medium No
Bridge Manchester canal & footpath importance
civic bridge
1826 Macclesfield A523 Cheshire Masonry arch Medium, from Original Medium No
Canal canal importance
civic bridge
1827 Cuttle Mill Bridge A5 Northamptonshire Twin-span Y In situ R.C. solid Low, hidden by Original one side Minor No
masonry arch slab box vegetation culvert
extension
1828 Grove Bridge A49 Shropshire Dressed Footbridge added Low Original Medium No
sandstone arch one side, 1961 importance
(steel & R.C.) civic bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1828 Moss Pit Railway A449 Staffordshire Masonry arch Y Precast and solid Medium None, original Medium No
slab replacement arch removed importance
of old structure after new civic bridge
(1962) construction
1829 Chappels A595 Cumbria Stone arch Y Widened Low Good Medium No
(Lanthwaite) M/A
1829 Millholme A595 Cumbria Stone arch Y Widened Low Medium Medium No
(m/arch)
1829 Knightsmill A39 Cornwall 3-span masonry Y R.C. slab Low Original one side Minor No
Bridge arch extension with culvert
new parapet to
match existing
1829 Muncaster Bridge A595 Cumbria Local Granite Medium Original Medium–low No
masonry arch importance
civic bridge
1830 Calder (M/arch) A595 Cumbria Stone arch Y Widened High Good High No
1830 Boot (M/arch R/C A595 Cumbria Stone arch Y Widened Hidden — No No
Saddle)
1830 Sandraw A596 Cumbria Stone arch Y Widened Low Good Low No
(M/arch)
1830 Tinkersley A6 Derbyshire Stone arch Low Poor Low No
1830 Cross Gates A6120 West Yorkshire Masonry arch Y Masonry/steel Low Original one side Medium No
Railway No. 23 plate girders importance
encased in civic bridge
concrete
1830 Sandford Bridge A41 Shropshire Masonry arch Y R.C. & simply Medium Original bridge Medium–low No
supported surrounded by importance
steel & timber extension & civic bridge
extensions footbridge
1831 Lickle (M/arch) A595 Cumbria Stone Y Widened Low Poor Low No
1831 Duddon A595 Cumbria Stone High Good V high No
1831 Low Lickle A595 Cumbria Slate arch Medium Original Medium/low No
1831 Newstead Bridge A16 Lincolnshire Stone R.C. saddle Low, hidden by Original Medium No
voussoirs & brick added vegetation
arch & concrete
saddle
1832 Blackwell A66 N. Yorkshire 3-span masonry Y Stone-faced in Medium–High Original one side Major civic No
masonry arch arch situ R.C. widening bridge
of arch
1832 Blythe West A696 Northumberland Masonry arch Low-from fields Original Medium No
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1833 Crowlas Bridge A30 Cornwall Masonry arch Y R.C. extensions Medium Original structure Minor No
either side hidden culvert
1833 Howend High A7 Cumbria Masonry arch Y Simply supported Medium Original one side Minor No
Bridge R.C. solid slab culvert
extension
1834 Shawford A36 Devon 3-span Stone arch High Good V high No
1834 Monkton Combe A36 Avon Brick arch HIgh Good High No
(Railway)
1834 Monkton Combe A36 Avon Stone arch High Good V high No
(Canal)
1834 Claverton A36 Avon Stone arch Medium Good Medium No
1834 Hinton Abbey A36 Avon Masonry arch Y Brick and in situ High Brick & I.C Minor No
underpass concrete addition one side bridge
extension
1834 Limpley Stoke A36 Avon 11-span High Original Major civic No
Viaduct brick/masonry/ bridge
stone arch
1834 River Bewl Bridge A21 Kent Masonry arch Low due to Original Minor No
surrounding culvert
vegetation
1835 Cattle Creep A69 Cumbria Masonry arch Low Original Medium– No
Bridge low
importance
civic bridge
1835 Warwick Bridge A69 Cumbria 3-span masonry Rebuilt version Medium Original extended Medium– No
bridge 1835 low
importance
civic bridge
1836 Curdworth River A446 Warwickshire 5-span solid slab Medium Original Medium No
brick arch importance
civic bridge
1837 Munton (Black A595 Cumbria Stone arch Y Widened Medium Good Medium No
Beck) m/arch
1837 Glyn Bridge A38 Cornwall 3-span masonry Medium Original Medium No
arch importance
civic bridge
1837 Holmrook Bridge A595 Cumbria Masonry arch Y Cased UB & R.C. Medium Original one side Medium No
slab widening importance
civic bridge
1838 Kirkby Thore A66 Cumbria Masonry arch Y Widened & Low Original one side, Minor No
Bridge strengthened, other simply culvert
simply supported supported
R.C. concrete deck
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1838 Powmaughan A69 Cumbria Masonry arch Y Simply supported Low Extension both Minor No
Bridge R.C. solid slab sides culvert
extension on
both sides
1838 Scarrow Hill A69 Cumbria Masonry arch Strengthened Medium–high Original Medium No
Railway Bridge 1956 from railway importance
rail bridge
1839 Tarvin Pool A54 Cheshire Masonry arch Y simply supported Low Original one side Minor No
Bridge precast concrete culvert
box added
1840 Box Brook A4 Wiltshire Twin-span Brick Low Poor, pipe on Medium No
arch facade
1840 Goit Stock Farm A660 West Yorkshire Stone culvert Y Widened Low Poor Low No
1840 Mickle Ing A660 West Yorkshire Stone culvert Y Widened Low Poor No No
(m/arch)
1840 Bradnop A523 Staffordshire Stone and brick Y R.C. simply Low Original one side, Minor No
arch supported solid R.C. and culvert
slab extension brickwork face on
(1931) other
1840 Bridge End A523 Staffordshire Stone arch Y R.C. arch rib and Low Original hidden by Medium No
solid slab concrete importance
extension either extensions civic bridge
side
1840 Calderside Bridge A646 W. Yorkshire Masonry arch Medium Original Medium No
importance
civic bridge
1840 Charlestown A646 W. Yorkshire Masonry arch Low, obscured by Original Medium– No
Lower Bridge trees low
importance
civic bridge
1840 Charlestown A646 W. Yorkshire Masonry arch Footbridge added Medium, partially Original Medium– No
Upper Bridge to north side hidden by low
vegetation importance
civic bridge
1840 Churchbridge A5 Staffordshire Masonry arch Y R.C. solid slab Low Original north Minor No
Brook extension elevation, steel culvert
parapet on south
1840 Crane Brook No.2 A5 Staffordshire Brick arch Y R.C. saddling & Medium Original one side Minor No
Bridge R.C. solid slab culvert
extension 1840
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1840 Milford Bridge A6 Derbyshire 2-span masonry High, from road Original Medium– Ancient
arch & concrete low monument
footway importance
civic bridge
1840 Millstream Bridge A596 Cumbria Masonry arch Low Original Minor No
culvert
1840 Rosewastis A39 Cornwall Masonry arch Y In situ reinforced Low Original one side Minor No
concrete culvert
extension with
masonry face
1840 Wash Brook A5 Staffordshire Masonry arch Y R.C. solid slab Low, obscured by Original one side Minor No
Bridge box culvert vegetation culvert
extension
1840 Windy Railway A646 Lancashire Skew masonry High Original Medium No
Bridge arch importance
civic bridge
1840 Workington A596 Cumbria 3-span masonry Medium Original Medium No
Bridge arch importance
civic bridge
1842 Jack O Watton A446 Warwickshire Bick arch Low, from railway Original Medium No
Railway importance
civic bridge
1844 Muncaster Mill A595 Cumbria Masonry arch Medium Original Medium– No
Bridge low
importance
civic bridge
1845 Hope Green A523 Cheshire Brick arch Y Precast, Low-from railway Original deck Medium No
Railway prestressed R.C. removed and importance
solid slab deck replaced civic bridge
1845 Lady Side M1 Northamptonshire Masonry arch Y In situ R.C. solid Low Original mostly Major civic No
slab extension hidden by bridge
extension and
overlay either
side.
1846 Aspatria Railway A596 Cumbria Masonry arch R.C. Saddle Medium, highly Original with R.C. Medium No
No.49 added visible from Saddle importance
railway rail bridge
1846 Bait Hill Bridge A11 Norfolk Simply supported Y Cased UB with Medium Original one side Medium No
riveted plate concrete jack importance
girder with brick arches and civic bridge
jack arches simply supported
deck
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1846 Heathfield Rly A596 Cumbria Masonry arch Medium, highly Original Medium No
No. 58 visible from importance
railway rail bridge
1847 Crossflats A650 West Yorkshire 3-span Medium Original Medium Unknown
Railway No. 64 masonry/brick importance
arches civic bridge
1848 Chester Road A449 Hereford & Brick/masonry Concrete on Medium Original plus Medium No
Bridge Worcester arch tubular steel frame footbridge importance
f/bridge added civic bridge
1848 Dunston Railway A140 Norfolk Brick arch Medium, highly Original Medium No
visible from importance
railway rail bridge
1848 Nell Railway A41 Oxfordshire Brick arches Y Re-decked & High Original one side Medium No
Bridge widened 1958 with importance
concrete rail bridge
1849 Town Bridge A43 Lincolnshire 3-span Stone arch High Good V Grade 2
(Stamford) important
1849 Town Bridge A43 Lincolnshire 3-span masonry High, prominent Original Major civic No
Stamford arch feature bridge
1850 Chipping A10 Hertfordshire Brick Y Widened Minor village Poor, mutilated Low No
1850 Mile House A19 N. Yorkshire Brick arched Y Widened Hidden Hidden No No
culvert
1850 Skew Railway A36 Wiltshire Single-span Brick Quite High Good Minor No
arch
1850 New drain N/B, A38 Staffordshire Brick arch Y Widened Low — Low No
orig
1850 Coley Beck A58 West Yorkshire Brick arch Low Medium Low No
culvert
1850 High Peak A6 Derbyshire Stone arch Y Widened High Poor Medium No
Junction Rly corrugated Steel
(CSBS)
1850 Lady Pitt Flood A638 South Yorkshire 8-span Stone Low Poor High No
arches Structure
1850 Lobb Mill A646 West Yorkshire Stone culvert Medium Medium High No
1850 Raylees East A696 Northumberland Stone arch High Good Medium No
1850 Kirkwhelpington A696 Northumberland Stone arch Y Widened High Good High No
(w-m/arch)
1850 Allens Bridge A556 Cheshire Masonry arch Y In situ R.C. beam Low Original one side Medium No
and slab extension importance
added (1930) civic bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1850 Ambergate Bridge A6 Derbyshire Masonry arch Y PSC beams & R.C. Medium Original one side Medium No
widening alterations hidden importance
civic bridge
1850 Blakeney Bridge A48 Gloucestershire Masonry arch Y Extended three Original can be Original one side Minor No
times seen one side, culvert
fairly well hidden
1850 Blakeney Bridges A48 Gloucestershire Masonry/stone Low Original Minor No
culverts
1850 Deene Bridge A43 Northamptonshire Masonry arch Y Fabricated steel Medium Original one side Minor No
beam extension culvert
1850 Desborough A6 Northamptonshire Brick arch Medium, high Original Medium No
Railway Bridge from railway importance
rail bridge
1850 Disley Station A6 Cheshire Brick arch High, from Original Medium No
Bridge platform importance
civic bridge
1850 Dunchurch A45 Warwickshire 3-span Brick arch Low Original Medium No
Station North importance
civic bridge
1850 Freeth Canal A5 Staffordshire Brick arch Y Simply supported High from canal Extension both Medium No
Bridge R.C. slab extension and footpaths sides importance
on both sides civic bridge
1850 Freshwater A628 Derbyshire Simply supported Low Original Medium– No
Bridge R.C. solid slab low
with masonry importance
piers/abutments civic bridge
1850 Hauxton Mill A10 Cambridgeshire Brick arch with Y In situ R.C. Low Original one side Medium Ancient
Bridge concrete Infill extension monument
1850 Heyford Grange A5 Northamptonshire Brick arch Y Simply supported Medium Original one sideMedium– No
No. 1 Bridge R.C. slab extension low
importance
civic bridge
1850 Marbleflat Bridge A69 Cumbria Masonry arch Y R.C. arch Low, obscured by Original one side Medium No
extension 1937 vegetation importance
civic bridge
1850 Massey’s Lodge A49 Cheshire Cast Iron and Propped with Can be seen from Original now with Medium No
Brick Beam and concrete supports footpath that runs 3-spans
Jack arch under bridge
1850 Nether Tabley A556 Cheshire Masonry arch Y In situ R.C. box Medium/low Original one side Medium No
beam and slab importance
extension civic bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1850 Oakmere Railway A556 Cheshire Masonry and Low-hidden by Original Medium No
Bridge Brick arch trees importance
civic bridge
1850 Stablecross A65 N. Yorkshire Ashular Medium Original Medium No
Railway Bridge masonry & importance
Brickwork rail bridge
1850 Temon Bridge A69 Cumbria Masonry arch Y Repaired 1850, Medium, partially Original bridge Minor No
widened 1935 obscured by hidden by culvert
vegetation extensions
1850 Thormanby A19 N. Yorkshire Coursed Low, over disused Original Low No
Bridge masonry/Brick railway importance
arch civic bridge
1850 Tom Otter Bridge A57 Lincolnshire Brick arch Y Arch re-built Medium Original one side Medium No
1985, in situ R.C. importance
box extension civic bridge
1850 Waithe Beck A16 Lincolnshire Masonry & R.C. Y Medium Original Medium No
Bridge twin arch importance
civic bridge
1850 Waverton A41 Cheshire Brick arch R.C. saddle Medium Original, but with Medium No
Railway new saddle importance
rail bridge
1851 Private Subway A646 Lancashire Masonry arch Y Simply supported Low Original one side Low No
No. 1 concrete importance
widening civic bridge
1851 Private Subway A646 Lancashire Masonry arch Low Original Low No
No.2 importance
civic bridge
1852 Fernhill Heath A38 3-span Brick arch End spans filled Medium, not Central arch Medium No
Railway Bridge in visible from road original importance
rail bridge
1853 Dover Priory A20 Kent 3-span brick arch Y Steel/concrete High from railway Original one side Medium No
Railway continuous beam platform importance
and slab rail bridge
extension
1853 Woofferton Skew Shropshire Mass fill masonry Original from Original Medium No
Rly brick arch railway importance
rail bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1856 Bromham Road A428 Bedfordshire 2-span Brick arch High, original from Original Medium No
Railway Bridge railway importance
civic bridge
1856 Knights Bridge A339 Hampshire 2-span Y Extended by Medium Original one side Medium No
brick/masonry brick faced R.C.
arch
1857 Burcote Bridge A43 Northamptonshire Brick arch Y simply supported Low Altered both Minor No
R.C. extensions sides, original culvert
each side hidden
1857 Needless Railway A595 Cumbria Single-span Low Original Medium No
masonry arch importance
civic bridge
1858 Ampthill Road A6 Bedfordshire 3-span simply strengthened Medium Original Medium No
Bridge supported 1968 importance
beam & slab, rail bridge
W.I. & concrete
1859 Trethawle Bridge A38 Cornwall Masonry arch Y Simply supported Low Original one side, Medium– No
P.C. extension altered other high
importance
1860 Leadenham A17 Lincolnshire Brick/stone, filled Buried under bank Lost No No
(infilled)
1860 Wilnecote A5 Staffordshire Brick arch Y Widened High Good Low No
Station, orig
1860 Newtown Railway A5 Staffordshire Brick arch Y Widened Low Good Low No
1860 Waterloo Railway A565 Merseyside Fab. steel Medium Good Low No
beam & slab
1860 Riddicks Yard A6 Derbyshire Stone culvert Low Good Low —
1860 Glingerfoot A7 Cumbria Masonry arch Low, hidden by Original one side Medium No
Bridge vegetation
1860 Kings Hill Bridge A43 Northamptonshire Segmental 3-ring Y Widened with Low Patchy, different Medium– No
(old) brick arch blue brick coloured low
brickwork importance
civic bridge
1861 Brockholes A59 Lancashire 7-span masonry Y R.C. widening High Original one side Major civic No
Bridge arch bridge
1861 Llynclys Bridge A483 Shropshire Simply supported Low, hidden by Original Medium– Ancient
C.I. girders and vegetation low monument
brick masonry importance
civic bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1861 Woodlands A550 Cheshire Red Sandstone Low, from railway Original Medium No
Railway and Brick arch importance
civic bridge
1864 Ampthill Road A6 Bedfordshire 3-span simply Brickwork Medium Original Medium No
East Railway supported brick diaphragms importance
Bridge arch beam and added 1968 rail bridge
Jack arches
1865 Redhill Railway A49 Herefordshire 3-span brick arch Original from Original Medium No
Bridge railway importance
rail bridge
1867 Great North Road A638 S. Yorkshire Red-brick semi- Medium Original Medium No
Railway Bridge circular skew importance
No. 109 arch rail bridge
1867 Tidbury Railway A303 Hampshire Brick arch Y Concrete encased Medium low, fairly Original one side Medium– No
Bridge RSJ simply concealed low
supported importance
extension civic bridge
1870 Holbeche No 2 A449 Staffordshire Brick culvert Y Widened Low Poor Low No
(m/arch)
1870 Holbeche No 1 A449 Staffordshire Brick culvert Y Widened Low Poor Low No
(m/arch)
1870 Calveley Station A51 Cheshire Brick, arch High Good Low No
1870 West Garforth A63 West Yorkshire Brick arch Deck replacement Medium, from Original Medium No
Railway No. 4 1956. Rolled road below abutments, new importance
steel beams deck civic bridge
encased in
concrete with in
situ concrete
slab.
1870 Crowden Brook A628 Derbyshire Random gritstone Low Original Minor No
Bridge block single arch culvert
1870 Derby St. Railway A570 Lancashire 3-span masonry Medium Original Medium No
Bridge clay bricks & importance
sandstone block rail bridge
arch
1872 Croxdale Railway A167 Durham Brick arch R.C. saddle Medium, highly Original plus Medium– No
Bridge added visible from saddle low
railway importance
civic bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1874 Victoria Bridge A30 Cornwall Masonry/P.C. Re-decked Low, only seen Original supports, Medium No
simply supported from railway new deck importance
beam and slab civic bridge
1875 Coastley Bridge A69 Northumberland Masonry arch Y R.C. solid slab Medium, obscured Original one side Medium– No
box wall by vegetation low
extension importance
civic bridge
1875 Lipwood Bridge A69 Northumberland Masonry arch Y Concrete solid Medium, obscured Original one side Medium– No
slab arch by vegetation low
extension importance
civic bridge
1877 Great Dudlands A59 Lancashire Simply supported Medium, highly Original Medium– No
Railway Bridge precast & R.C. visible from low
slab railway importance
civic bridge
1878 Bakewell Road A6 Derbyshire Brick/stone Y Widened Low Medium Low No
culvert culvert
1879 Norbury Bridge A523 Greater Masonry arch Steel parapets Low Original Medium No
Manchester added importance
civic bridge
1880 River Bollin A523 Cheshire Stone arch Y Widened Medium Good High No
culvert
1880 Wood Brook A6 Leicestershire Brick, stone, long Hidden Not known Low No
culvert
1880 Highnam Bridge A48 Gloucestershire Brick arch Low Original Medium No
1880 Lansdown Road A40 Gloucestershire Brick and mass Lengthened High, from railway Original plus 2nd Medium No
Bridge concrete arch second span, in span importance
situ R.C. with rail bridge
brick facing
1880 Wansford A47 Cambridgeshire Brick arch Low, hidden by Original Medium– No
Railway Bridge vegetation low
importance
civic bridge
1881 Barmere Bridge A49 Cheshire Blue Brick arch Low Original Minor No
culvert
1881 Cholmondeley A49 Cheshire Brick arch Low Original Minor No
Bridge culvert
1881 Palmers Bridge A30 Cornwall Masonry arch Y R.C solid Medium Original one side Medium No
slab/masonry importance
extension civic bridge
1881 Quoisley Bridge A49 Cheshire Blue Brick arch Low, hidden by Original Minor No
vegetation culvert
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1882 Carlton Station A1041 N. Yorkshire Simply supported Medium, highly Original Medium– No
Railway Bridge wrought iron visible from low
girders in beam railway importance
and slab civic bridge
configuration
with brick Jack
arches
1884 Vale Bridge A41 Buckinghamshire Twin-span blue Medium Original Medium No
brickwork arch importance
civic bridge
1887 Carminnow Cross A38 Cornwall Brick/masonry Overslabbed, R.C. Low, hidden by Original Medium– No
Railway Bridge arch vegetation low
importance
civic bridge
1887 Carminow Cross A30(S) Cornwall Masonry arch Y In situ concrete Low Original removed Medium No
Slip Road Bridge solid slab deck and replaced. importance
replacement Masonry slip road
abutments exist bridge
1887 Onibury Bridge A49 Shropshire Wrought iron High, from river Original Medium No
lattice girders importance
civic bridge
1889 Leicester Road A6 Leicestershire Simply supported Re-decked Medium, highly Original plus new Medium No
Railway Bridge beam and slab visible from deck importance
railway rail bridge
1890 Park Street A1041 N. Yorkshire Rolled steel/brick From railway Poor, 1946 new Low No
Railway pieces, other deck
forms
1890 Westwell Leacon A20 Kent Single-span brick Y Widened Minor village Good Minor No
arch
1890 Anchor A452 West Midlands Brick, beam & High Good Low No
slab
1891 Beckside Bridge A595 Cumbria Masonry arch Saddled 1992 Low Original but Minor No
saddled culvert
1891 South Witham A1 Lincolnshire Brick arch Y Precast concrete Medium Original from east, Major civic No
slab and box hidden from west bridge
beams elevation
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1892 Monkbretton A259 East Sussex R.C. & wrought High Original Medium No
Bridge iron slab on importance
toughing civic bridge
1893 Limeworks A638 S. Yorkshire 4-ring brick arch Y R.C. beams Low, not visible Original bridge Medium– No
Railway Bridge added both from main hidden low
sides importance
civic bridge
1893 Newlands Bridge A590 Cumbria Simply supported Low Original Minor No
plate girder with culvert
steel plates
(beam and slab)
1893 Shipton Bridge A1079 Humberside Simply supported Y In situ R.C. slab Medium Original one side Medium No
masonry/RSJ and widened & importance
Jack arches strengthened civic bridge
1896 Dorrington A49 Shropshire Mass fill masonry High, from railway Original Medium Grade 2
Railway Bridge brick arch importance
rail bridge
1897 Guldeford Lane A259 East Sussex Brick culvert Y Widened Hidden Not known No No
Corner
1897 Cross Keys Swing A17 Lincolnshire Steel battledeck, Refurbished 1989 High Original Medium No
Bridge brick/concrete refurbished importance
Supports swing
bridge
1899 Gallows No. 1 A41 Buckinghamshire 3-ring red Y In situ R.C. simply Low, partially Original hidden Minor No
Bridge brickwork arch supported hidden by both sides culvert
extension vegetation
1900 Dorchester Hill A35 Dorset Brick culvert Y Widened Low Poor Low No
1900 Hatches A36 Wiltshire Twin-span brick Y Widened Low Not known Low No
culvert
1900 Burscough A59 Lancashire Fab. steel Low Medium Low No
Railway beam & slab
1900 Redlead Mill A61 Derbyshire Twin-span Y Medium Original Low No
Bridge masonry arch importance
civic Bridge
1900 Beckgrange A69 Cumbria Masonry arch Y R.C. slab with Low Original one side Med/Low No
mass concrete importance
abutments
1900 Brook House A446 Warwickshire Brick arch Y Simply supported Medium Original one side Medium– No
Bridge in situ R.C. & pre- low
stressed importance
extension civic bridge
1900 Castle Gardens A596 Cumbria Masonry arch Low, vegetation Original Minor No
Bridge culvert
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1900 Cowan Old A65 Lancashire Uncoursed Low, hidden by Original Minor No
Bridge masonry arch vegetation culvert
1900 Hungry Hill A5 Warwickshire 3-span Brick arch Medium–low, Original Medium– No
Bridge bridges disused low
railway importance
civic bridge
1900 Langley Brook A446 Warwickshire Twin-span brick Y In situ R.C. Medium Original one side Medium– No
Bridge arch extension on one low
side & R.C. importance
saddle civic bridge
1900 Micklethwaite A596 Cumbria Masonry arch Y In situ R.C. arch Low, due to Original one side Minor No
Bridge added vegetation culvert
1900 Old Beck A52 Lincolnshire Two ring brick Medium Original Minor No
Washdyke Bridge arch, simply culvert
supported in situ
concrete arch
and R.C. saddle
1900 River Witham A1 Lincolnshire 2-span Y In situ R.C. solid Low Concrete structure Minor No
brick/masonry slab either side, either side culvert
arch strengthened
1993
1900 Sheepwash A628 Derbyshire 3-span masonry Low Original Minor No
Corner arch culvert
1900 South Leeds M621 W. Yorkshire Deck replaced High Major civic No
Railway No. 7 1997 bridge
Bridge
1900 Uffington Road A16 Lincolnshire Brick Jack Metal plate Low, hidden by Original Medium No
Railway Bridge arches & RSJ parapet added vegetation importance
rail bridge
1900 Watford Locks A5 Northamptonshire Brick arch Y Existing arches Low Original one side Minor No
Bridge saddled and culvert
simply supported
R.C. slab
extension
1900 Weedon Railway A45 Northamptonshire Wrought iron and Medium, high Medium No
Bridge brick, plate from railway importance
girders and Jack rail bridge
arches, simply
supported deck
1900 Wilmington A35 Devon Masonry arch Medium Original Minor No
Underbridge and 2 minor culvert
arches
1900 Grainsby A16 Lincolnshire Brick Buttressed Medium Poor Medium No
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1900 Woolscott River A45 Warwickshire Masonry Twin Y R.C. solid slab Low Original hidden by Minor No
arch one side, in situ concrete culvert
R.C. twin box on extensions
other side
1901 Clickmin culvert A696 Northumberland In situ concrete Y R.C. solid slab Low Original hidden by Low No
solid Slab extensions each extensions importance
side minor
culvert
1902 Caves Inn Bridge A5 Warwickshire Brick arch Y R.C. simply Medium Original hidden Medium– No
supported box both sides by low
extensions extensions importance
civic bridge
1902 High Ulverston A590 Cumbria Brick and Low, hidden by Original Minor No
Bridge concrete 3 ring vegetation culvert
arch
1902 Monk Fryston A63 N. Yorkshire Simply supported New deck added High Major Civic No
Bridge composite steel 1998 Bridge
beams and
concrete slab,
brick abutments
1903 Aschurch Station A438 Gloucestershire Simply supported Medium, highly Original Medium– No
Bridge steel/brick, plated visible from low
beams/jack railway importance
arches bridge civic bridge
1903 Bankend Bridge A596 Cumbria Masonry arch Low, due to Original Minor No
surrounding culvert
vegetation
1903 New Bridge A596 Cumbria Steel plate High, from road Original Medium No
girders and beneath importance
buckle plates civic bridge
with concrete
infill
1905 Hough Railway A500 Cheshire W.I. girders & Raised 1960, High, particularly Medium No
Bridge brick Jack arches overspan 1992 from railway Importance
(simply Rail Bridge
supported)
1906 Cringle Brook A1 Lincolnshire Brick arch Y In situ R.C. solid One side concrete Original one side Minor No
slab extension in continuous box culvert
1960
1906 Galloper Pool A595 Cumbria Engineering brick Structure re-built Low, hidden by Original Minor No
Bridge 3-Ring arch 1906 vegetation culvert
1906 Low Byrness A696 Northumberland Masonry solid Y Extended & Low, hidden by Original one side Minor No
Bridge slab arch saddled with R.C. vegetation culvert
1957
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1906 Pike House A4 Avon Fab steel/in situ Medium, highly Original Medium No
Railway Bridge mass concrete visible from importance
simply supported railway rail bridge
beam and slab
1907 Curdworth A446 Warwickshire 5-span brick arch Medium, highly Original Medium No
Railway Bridge visible from importance
railway rail bridge
1907 Otterburn Bridge A696 Northumberland 2-span brick arch Medium, Partially Original Medium– No
obscured by low
vegetation importance
civic bridge
1908 Holderness Drain A1033 Humberside In situ R.C. arch Medium Original Medium– No
Bridge low
importance
civic bridge
1908 Railway No. 1 A638 S. Yorkshire Simply supported Medium, highly Original Medium No
Bridge, Highfelds fab/steel & blue visible from importance
brick beam and railway rail bridge
Jack arch bridge
1909 Barnswood A523 Staffordshire Stone arch Low Original Low No
importance
1909 Ryecroft Gate A523 Staffordshire Stone arch New concrete Low Original Minor No
deck (1985) importance
farm access
1909 Sanbed Bridge A646 W. Yorkshire Simply supported Low, small Original Minor No
concrete infill structure culvert
between rolled
steel beams
1909 Sewer/Tramway M6 West Midlands In situ R.C. High Original Major civic No
Bridge voided box beam bridge
1910 Jogging Bridge A65 Lancashire Masonry arch Y R.C. simply Medium Original hidden Minor No
supported culvert
extensions
1910 Langsett Bridge A616 S. Yorkshire In situ concrete Low, partially Original Medium– No
arch with hidden by low
masonry face at vegetation importance
spandrels civic bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
1910 White Bridge A41 Merseyside Brick/Masonry Medium, visible Original Medium No
arch from railway importance
rail bridge
1911 Beeston B Bridge A49 Cheshire Masonry arch Medium Original Minor No
culvert
1911 Railway No.39 A638 S. Yorkshire Simply supported Low Original Medium No
Bridge fab/steel & blue importance
brick beam & rail bridge
Jack arch bridge
1912 Beeston Canal A49 Cheshire In situ R.C. solid High, by canal Original Medium No
slab arch
1912 Belshiel Bridge A696 Northumberland Brick arch Y R.C. slab Low Original one side Minor No
extension culvert
1912 Coldcoats West A696 Northumberland Brick arch Medium Original Medium– No
Bridge low
importance
civic bridge
1912 Compton A428 Northamptonshire Single-span brick Y Precast R.C. solid Medium Original one side, Medium No
arch slab portal concrete on other importance
civic bridge
1912 Crow Hall west A69 Northumberland Masonry arch Y Simply supported Low Original one side Minor No
Bridge with R.C. saddle R.C. solid slab culvert
extension
1912 Newtown Bridge A34 Hampshire 3-span brick arch Y In situ R.C. Medium Original one side, Medium No
extension other brick faced importance
R.C. arch civic bridge
1912 Penwortham New A59 Lancashire 3-span masonry Medium–High Original, possibly Medium, No
Bridge arch a few minor high
repairs to importance
masonry civic bridge
1913 Sluice A565 Lancashire Rolled High Good Low No
steel/beam &
slab
1913 Back drain A565 Lancashire Single-span Medium Original Medium No
masonry arch importance
civic bridge
1913 Meols Bridge A565 Lancashire Masonry and Y R.C. and Medium Original one side Medium No
brick arch brickwork importance
extension civic bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Year Structure name Road County Original Bridge Extension Modifications Visibility Visual Importance Heritage
Form/materials One Both condition listing
side sides
1913 Pinfold Bridge A570 Lancashire In situ R.C. Beam High, from river & Original Medium No
and slab portal footpath importance
civic bridge
1913 Sandy Bridge A565 Lancashire Masonry and Y R.C. slab Medium, from Original one side Medium No
brick arch extension river importance
civic bridge
1913 Sluice C A565 Lancashire Simply supported Medium New aluminium Medium No
fabricated steel parapet importance
beam and floor civic bridge
plate
1913 Watergall Under A423 Warwickshire Brick arch Y Extended with in Low Original one side Medium– No
Bridge situ arched R.C. low
solid slab importance
civic bridge
1914 Burscough Canal A59 Lancashire In situ R.C. ribbed retaining wall Medium–high Original Medium No
Bridge slab portal added next to importance
bridge civic bridge
1914 Whitelee A68 Northumberland Masonry arch Medium Original Medium No
importance
civic bridge
1914 Shiningpool A696 Northumberland Simply supported Medium Original Medium No
steel beams/jack importance
arches civic bridge
Downloaded by [Institute of Civil Engineers], [Michael Daburn] at 03:10 10 February 2015
Index
BRIDGE INDEX
Adelaide, Leamington 191 Blackfriars, London (73)
Aireworth, Bradford 203 Boothferry Swing 276
Albert Dock, Liverpool 274, (275) Bradford-on-Avon 29, (45), 112
Albert, London 47, (50), 66, (217), 238, Bradstone, Devon (356)
(359) Braidley Road, Bournemouth 37
Albion, Twerton 218 Bray Viaduct 118, (119)
Alum Chine Footbridge 229 Brig O’Dee, Aberdeen 361
Amarante, Portugal 48, (51) Brighton Chain Pier (14), 216
Angle Vale, Australia 158, 159 Britannia Rail (170), 200, (201), 218
Arlington Memorial, Washington, USA Brooklyn, New York, USA 171
(342) Bures, Suffolk 195
Avington Park 60, (61) Burgate Footbridge, Hampshire 225, (227)
Avoncliffe Aqueduct 98, (99) Burn Footbridge, Devon (221), (222)
Axmouth (305), 305, 330, 349, (350)
Caledon, N. Ireland 230
Backs Wood Footbridge, Devon 222, Calstock Viaduct (365)
(223), (224) Chertsey 62
Balcombe Rail Viaduct 28, 52, 98 Chinese Bridge, Godmanchester (138),
Baltimore Street, Baltimore, USA 82, 317 153
Barmouth Rail Viaduct 23, 151, (158), 159 Cleveland, Bath 46, (49), 88, (89)
Barnstaple 348 Clifton Suspension 46, (47), 53, (54), 70,
Barrington Works Rail Viaduct 329 (71), (204), 218, (359)
Barton, Wiltshire 58, (60), 92 Coalport, Shropshire 179
Bathampton 46, (48) Conway 170, (202)
Battersea 87, (88), (352) Craithie, Scotland 218
Beckton Road Flyover (36), 37
Bedminster Old, Bristol 199 Dean Valley, Edinburgh 28, 70
Bideford 347 Donner Summit, California, USA 81, 331,
Billingham Branch 13, 17, 32, (33) 332
402 BRIDGE INDEX
GENERAL INDEX
Adam, R. 29, 343, 358 Sully, France (1985) 240
Ancient Monument and Archaeological Tay Rail (1879) 22, 171
Areas Act 1979 9 Uckfield (1903) 180
Arnodin, F. 218 Widcome (1877) 46
Arrol, Sir W. 280 Ynys-y-Gwas (1985) 306
Corrosion
Baker, Sir J. 32 Cast iron 187, 205
Bazalgette, Sir J. 217 Hanger and catenary cables 217, 234,
Brindley, J. 108 237, 241, (242), (243)
Brittle fracture 32, 33, (182), 217, 240 Prestressing steel 156, 319–20, 334
Brown, Sir S. 231 Reinforcing steel 66, (67), 317
Brunel, I. K. 23, 28, 136, 345 Steel 182, 280, 317, 328
Wrought iron 64–5, 181, 188
Cambridge Camden Society 14 Covered bridges 155
Carbonation 304, 312
Chlorides 304, 316 Dredge, J. 40, 216, 220
Collapses
Ashtabula, USA (1876) 171 English Heritage 9, 10, 370
Bailliery, Northern Ireland (1988) 245 Environmental Protection Act 1990 153
Broughton (1831) 217 Etheridge, W. 23, 135
Dee Rail (1847) 169
Hasselt, Belgium (1938) 33, 182 Fatigue
Inverness Rail (1976) 127 Cast iron 180, 197
Kettlewell, North Yorkshire (1985) 95 Detection 251
Norris, Basingstoke Canal (1979) 95 Masonry 95
Quebec, Canada (1916) 194 Monitoring 250–1
Silver, Point Pleasant, USA (1967) 233 Steel 181, 280
404 GENERAL INDEX